H ^' CORNELL UNIVERSITY LIBRARY Date Due Cornell University Library PR 5588.B87 1894 Tennyson, his art and relation to mo mod T ENNYSON 1bi0 Hrt anb IRelation to flDobern Xlfe STOPFORD A. BROOKE, M.A. G. P. PUTNAM'S SONS NEW YORK LONDON 37 WEST TWKNTV-THIRU STREET 24 BEDFORD STREET, STRAND S^e J-nKktibochtt ^ttsii 1894 Copyright, 1894 BY G. P. PUTNAM'S SONS ifO f7(ot / Electrotyped, Printed, and Bound by ^be ftnickecbocltec preee, Wew l^orft G. P. Putnam's Sons CONTENTS Introduction ... . . I. Tennyson as an Artist II. His Relation to Christianity . III. His Relation to Social Politics CHAP. I. The Poems of 1830 .... II. The Poems of 1833 .... III. The Poems of 1842 .... IV. The Classical and Romantic Poems of 1842 with the later Classical Poems V. The Princess VI. The Princess {Cont.) — The Woman': Question VII. In Memoriam VIII. In Memoriam {Cont.) — Its Structure IX. Maud and the War-Poems X. Idylls of the King .... The Coming of Arthur . jnvv^V.A/^^i'eth and Lynette PAGE I 2 13 31 49 73 93 no 145 169 188 212 229 259 268 275 IV Contents CHAP. X. Idylls of the King — {Coni.) The Marriage of Geraint Geraint and Enid Balin and Balan P py/\ .xV ..c^. •Merlin and Vivien . Lancelot and Elaine The Holy Grail Pelleas and Ettarre The Last Tournament Lancelot Guinevere The Passing of Arthur XL Enoch Arden and the Sea-Poetry XII. Aylmer's Field, Sea Dreams, The Brook XIII. The Dramatic Monologues XIV. Speculative Theology . XV. The Nature-Poetry XVI. The Later Poems Index .... 28 29 29 31 31 33 34 35 35 37 39 41 43 44 46 48 51 TENNYSON HIS ART AND RELATION TO MODERN LIFE Cornell University yk Library The original of tliis book is in tine Cornell University Library. There are no known copyright restrictions in the United States on the use of the text. http://www.archive.org/details/cu31924013560770 TENNYSON. INTRODUCTION. THE death of Tennyson was worthy of his life. He died with the simplicity which marked his life, and yet with a certain conscious stateliness which was all his own ; and these two, simplicity and stateliness, were also vital in the texture of his poetry. But his dying hour, though it has left a noble picture on the mind of England, is not the important thing. His life and poetry are the real matter of use and interest, and his death gains its best import from its being the beau- tiful and fitting end of all the work that had gone before it. It became an artist, it became a Christian, it became a man. To these three points this Introduction is dedi- cated — to his relation to beauty, to his relation to the Christian faith, and to his relation to the movement of hu- manity. The art of his poems, his work on nature and his work on human life, as far as this immense subject I 2 Tennyson can be compressed into a few hundred pages, will be treated of in the rest of this book. For more than sixty years he practised his art, and his practice of it, being original and extraordinarily careful and self-respecting, suggests and comments on almost every question that concerns the art of poetry. For more than sixty years he lived close to the present life of England, as far as he was capable of comprehending and sympathising with its movements ; and he inwove what he felt concerning it into his poetry. For many years to come that poetry — so close to modern life — will open a vast storehouse of subjects to those writers who are interested in the application of imaginative emotion to the problems and pleasures of life. Half at least of those problems and pleasures eluded Tennyson, or he did not see them. But he felt the other half all the more strongly, and he felt it for this long period of sixty years. He then w"ho writes on Tennyson has so wide a country over which to travel, that he cannot do much more than visit it here and there. When he has finished his journey, he knows how much he has left unseen, untouched ; how much more of pleasure and good he will gain in many more journeys over this varied, home-like, and romantic land. Tennyson as an Artist.— The first characteristic of Tennyson's art — that is, of his shaping of the beauty which he saw in Nature and Humanity — was simplicity, and this came directly out of his character. The Introduction way in which he worked, his choice of subjects, his style, were all the revelation of a character drawn on large and uncomplicated lines ; and in this sense, in the complete sincerity to his inner being of all he did and in the manner of its doing, he was simple in the truest sense of the word. Nothing was ever done for effect ; no subject in which he was not veritably involved was taken up. Nothing was even tried, save a few metri- cal exercises, for experiment's sake alone, much less to please the popular moment. The thing shaped was the legitimate child of natural thought and natural feeling. Vital sincerity or living correspondence between idea and form, that absolute necessity for all fine art as for all noble life, was his, and it is contained in what I have called his simplicity. His clearness is also contained in this simplicity — clearness in thought, in expression, and in representa- tion of the outward world, one of the first and greatest things an artist can attain. It is true that Tennyson never went down into the obscure and thorny depths of metaphysics and theology ; it is true that he did not at- tempt to express the more dreadful and involved passions of mankind, such as Shakespeare in his Tragic worked upon, nor the subtle and distant analogies and phases of human nature in which Browning had his pleasure. It was easy, then, it may be said, for him to be clear. But I think it was not from inability to try these sub- jects that he did not write about them, but from delib- erate choice not to write about that which he could not 4 Tennyson express with lucidity of thought and form. He deter- mined to be clear. He chose plain and easy lines of thought in philosophy and theology, but he expressed them with art — that is, in beautiful form proceeding out- wards from impassioned feeling ; and a poem like The Two Voices or Out of the Deep is an instance of the way this was done. The same choice of the easy to be un- derstood presided over his human subjects. For the most part he wrote of the everyday loves and duties of men and women ; of the primal pains and joys of hu- manity ; of the aspirations and trials which are com- mon to all ages and all classes and independent even of the disease of civilisation ; but he made them new and surprising by the art which he added to them — by beauty of thought, tenderness of feeling, and ex- quisiteness of shaping. The main lines of the subjects, even of the classical subjects, are few, are simple, are clear. And I think all the more that this choice of clearness (of clearness as a part of simpHcity) was deliberate, be- cause of his representation of Nature. It is plain that he might have entered into infinite and involuted de- scription ; that he could, if he pleased, have expressed the stranger and remoter aspects of Nature, for he had an eye to see everything from small to large. But he selected the simple, the main lines of a landscape or an event of Nature, and rejected the minuter detail or the obscurer relations between the parts of that which he described. What was done was done in the fewest words possible, and with luminous fitness of phrase. Introduction 5 English literature owes him gratitude for this clear- ness. At a time when we are running close to the edge of all the errors of the later Elizabethans, Tennyson never allowed himself to drift into obscurity of thought or obscurity of expression, and showed (as those did not who restored clearness to English song in the time of Dryden) that simplicity of words, as well as jewelled brightness of thought and description, might be also compact of imagination. The lamp of language which he held in his hand burnt with a bright, keen, and glow- ing flame. The debt we owe Tennyson for this is not owed by English literature alone ; it is personal also. Every writer should acknowledge the debt and follow the example. Clearness in thought and words ought to be a part of a writer's religion ; it is certainly a neces- sary part of his morality. Nay, to follow clearness like a star, clearness of thought, clearness of phrase, in every kind of life, is the duty of all. But the poets are most bound to feel and fulfil that duty, and it is not one of the least which belong to their art and their influence. Tennyson felt it and fulfilled it. One other thing I may briefly add to these judgments concerning his simplicity. It is that (after his very earli- est work) his stuff is of almost an equal quality through- out. I do not mean that all the poems are equally good, but that the web on which their pattern was woven kept, with but a few exceptions, the same closeness and fine- ness throughout. The invention, the pictures, the arrangement, and the colouring of the things wrought 6 Tennyson on the web were variable in excellence, but the stuff was uniform. This is an excessively rare excellence in a poet, and it continued to the close. The workman- ship is curiously level from youth to age ; and that kind of simplicity has also its root in character. Mingled with this simplicity, which was due to the unconscious entrance of his character into his art, there was also in all his poetry, as I have said with regard to his death, a certain stateliness entirely conscious of itself, and arising out of a reverence for his own individuality. The personality of Tennyson, vividly conscious of itself and respecting itself, pervades his poetry, is part of his art, and gives it part of its power. I have called it self- respecting to distinguish it from the personality of those poets who, like Byron, spread out their personality be- fore us, but whom we cannot suspect of reverencing themselves. " Reverencing themselves " seems an in- vidious term, but in the case of poets like Tennyson, and there is a distinct class of such poets, it means that they look upon themselves as prophets, as endowed with power to proclaim truth and beauty, as consecrated to do work which will delight, console, and exalt mankind. It is, then, rather their high vocation which they rever- ence than anything in themselves ; and this bestows on all their work that stateliness which is self-conscious, as it were, in all their poems. They are never seen in un- dress, never without their singing and prophetic robes, never unattended by one or other of the graver Muses. We have had two great examples of this type of poet Introduction 7 in the past. Milton was one, Wordsworth was another. Milton never moved his verse unconscious of Urania by his side. Wordsworth never lost the sense that he was a consecrated spirit. And Tennyson never forgot that the poet's work was to convince the world of love and beauty ; that he was born to do that work, and to do it worthily. This is an egotism (if we choose to give it that term) which is charged with power and with fire. Any individuality, conscious of itself, respecting itself because of its faith in a sacred mission entrusted to it, and beneath which it may not fall without dishonour, lifts and kindles other individualities, and exalts their views of human life. It does this work with tenfold greater force when it is in a poet, that is, in one who adds to its moral force the all-subduing power of beauty. This conviction, which cannot belong to a weak poet, but does (when it is consistent throughout life) belong to poets whose nature is hewn out of the living rock, en- ters as stateliness into all their verse, gives it a moral virtue, a spiritual strength, and emerges in a certain grandeur or splendour of style, more or less fine as the character is more or less nobly mixed. This sense of the relation the poet bears to mankind, this sense he has of his office and of the duty it imposes on him, was pro- foundly felt by Tennyson, became a part of him as an artist, and was an element in every line he wrote. Per- sonal it was, but it was personal for the sake of human- ity ; and dignity, stateliness in subjects, in thoughts and in style, issued naturally from that conviction. 8 Tennyson These are things which belong to a poet's art, but by themselves they would not, of course, make him an artist. The essential difference of an artist is love of beauty and the power of shaping it. The greatness of an artist is proportionate to the depth and truth of his love of beauty ; to his faithfulness to it, and to his un- remitting effort to train his natural gift of shaping it into fuller ease, power, and permanence. As to beauty itself, men talk of natural beauty, of physical, moral, and spirit- ual beauty, and these term-divisions have their use ; but at root all beauty is one, and these divided forms of it are modes only of one energy, conditioned by the ele- ments through which it passes. They can all pass into one another, and they can all be expressed in terms of one another. To define, then, what beauty is in itself is beyond our power, but we can approach a definition of it by mark- ing out clearly its results on us. What is always true of beauty is this, that, wherever it appears, it awakens love of it which has no return on self, but which bears us out of ourselves ; it stirs either joy or reverence in the heart without bringing with it any self-admiration or vanity ; and it kindles the desire of reproducing it, not that we may exult in our own skill in forming it, but that our reproduction of it may awaken emotions in others simi- lar to those which the original sight of beauty stirred in our own heart — that is, it more or less forces the seer of it into creation. This creation, this representation of the beautiful, is art ; and the most skilful representation of Introduction the ugly — that is, of anything which awakens either re- pulsion, or base pleasure, or horror which does not set free and purify the soul, or scorn instead of reverence, or which does not kindle in us the desire of reproduc- tion of it that we may stir in others similar emotions to our own — is not art at all. It is clever imitation, it is skill, it is artifice, it is not art. It is characteristic of an age which is writhing under the frivolous despotism of. positive science that the accurate and skilful representa- tion of things and facts which are not beautiful is called art ; and it belongs to all persons who care for the growth of humanity, not to denounce this error, for de- nunciation is barren of results, but to live and labour for the opposite truth. Far more rests on that effort than men imagine. A third at least of the future betterment of mankind, to which we now look forward with more hope than we have done for years, depends on this ef- fort, on all that it involves, on all that it will create in the imaginative and spiritual life of the human race. With a few exceptions, into which this tendency to scientific representation carried him — poems of dissec- tion and denunciation, like Despair, and worse still. The Promise of May, Tennyson was faithful through his whole life to beauty, writing always of what was worthy of love, of joy, of solemn or happy reverence ; and by this, and in this sphere, was the steady artist. The man- ifestation of these things, his creation of them, for the love and pleasure and veneration of himself and men, was his unbroken delight. lo Tennyson How much we owe to him for this, especially at this time, only the future will fully know. It is true, this faithfulness to beauty is the foremost characteristic of all great artists, the very quintessence of their genius, that which makes them permanent ; but he deserves perhaps more praise for it than many others, for he was tempted by the tendency of his time to swerve from it, ,as Wordsworth, Shelley, and Keats were not tempted. Once or twice he yielded, as I said, but these instances only show how much he resisted, and how faithfully. This, then, it was which kept him always fresh, even to advanced age. He whose eyes are steadily fixed on the beautiful, always loves, and is always young. Moreover, the true artist has written on his heart, " Love not the world, nor the things of the world," and this, in spite of many foolish things said of him, was true of Tennyson. If what I said of his love of beauty be true, he could not have bent his art to the world, and he never did. For the artist knows that absolute beauty is a perfection which he never can fully grasp, which al- ways becomes before him a greater ocean, which there- fore invites and kindles an incessant pursuit. He can never furl his sail in this pursuit ; he can never turn aside, while he is full of its ardour, to any lower or meaner love, to any selfish strife. The passion it makes glow is one which devours all other passions. The de- sire to reveal beauty, to make it clear, so far as he has seen it, is a desire which makes all merely personal de- sires common and unclean. Introduction 1 1 Whatever vulgar folk have said of Tennyson, his whole work breathes with that desire. I do not believe, and I cannot trace in one line of his poetry, that he ever wrote for the sake of money, or place, or to catch the popular ear, or to win a transient praise. He wrote only that of which he loved to write, that which moved him to joy or reverence, that which he thought of good report for its loveliness. Even the things he did as Poet Laureate, where, if ever, he might have been untrue to this, have no tinge of the world about them. They speak to royalties of the things of eternal beauty, of the natural sorrows and joys of faithful motherhood and wifehood, of duties and sacrifice performed in high places — the same duties and sacrifice which might be done by the labourer and the slave — of love and honour and faith, of those ideals of humanity which are as capa- ble of being pursued and fulfilled in the cottage as in the palace. The Laureate Odes are more lessons to royal folk than celebrations of them. He was, then, faithful to loveliness. It is not too much to say that he saw all the universe of man and Nature and of God in their relation to ineffable beauty, and that the getting of this pervading essence out of all things, the shaping of it, and the crying of — " Look there ; love and worship, rejoice and reverence," was the one supreme thing in his art for which he cared. This may be said of all true poets, and it is here said of him. It is the mightiest debt we owe to the faithful artists, and we feel it all the more deeply at a time when art 12 Tennyson yields more than is seemly to the temptations of the world. But the power of seeing beauty, and the love of beauty, are not all that makes the great artist. He must also have the power of shaping the beauty which he sees, and in a way peculiarly his own. There must be in the work the personal touch, the individual surprise, the unique way, the unimitated shaping which provokes imitation. We ought to feel in every artist's work the immediate pressure of an original, personal creator, who has his own special manner with things and words. This is one of the main tests of genius. Of every great poet it is true, and it is plainly true of Tennyson. Every line is alive with his own distinction. On his natural gift of creating, and on his careful training of it, I need not dwell, nor yet on his practice and love of the skilfulnesses of his art, of the careful study of words and their powers in verse, of his mingled strength and daintiness and weakness, of all that belongs to Form. These things and their like in him have been for years the food of critics. No one disputes that he touched excellence in them, or that he had the power of creation. But I maintain that all his technique was not for his own sake, but was first urged by his love of beauty. It was necessary, for the sake of his faithful- ness to her, that the shape he gave to what he loved should be as perfect, as strong, as gracious, and as full of delightful surprises as he could make it ; and not one of our poets has striven with a more unfailing intensity Introduction 13 to do this honour to all the beauty he saw in Nature and in man ; as eager in this at eighty as at thirty years. It is a great lesson to all artists ; it is a lesson to us all. Power, then, to see beauty, power to shape it, these were his. How far he saw it, with what degrees of ex- cellence he shaped it, how great an artist he was — is not now the question. The question is. Did he always see it with love and joy ; did he always shape it with faithful- ness ? And I answer that his fidelity to beauty, when- ever he saw it, was unbroken. II Tennyson's Relation to Christianity.— The next subject I treat of in this Introduction is Tennyson's rela- tion to Christianity. When Tennyson passed from school to the univer- sity, religious life in England had very much decayed. The spirit which animated Wesley, and which had fallen like the prophet's mantle on the earlier Evan- gelicals, had now become cold. English religion, in and out of the Church, was like the valley Ezekiel described, full of bones, and the bones were dry. And in the midst of the valley one figure, now old, who had seen the fire of religious sacrifice rise high to God in the past, who had welcomed its descent and directed it into new channels but who had outlived his enthusiasms, went to and fro, chilled at heart, and wailing for what had been. It was the soul of Coleridge, and if the voice of the Spirit asked him : " Son of Man, can these bones 14 Tennyson live ? " he answered, but not in hope, " Lord God, Thou knowest." He died before he saw the resurrec- tion which Tennyson saw, the blowing of the wind of God, and the bones coming together, and the slain breathed upon, so that they lived and stood upon their feet, an exceeding great army. Nevertheless, the old prophet did his work, and his power moved in the two men, though in a very different fashion, who, in the same years which saw a political and poetic resurrection, awakened into a new spring, with all the promise of summer, the religious life of England. The true begin- ning of Tennyson's as of Browning's poetical life was coincident with the birth of the movements afterwards called the High Church and the Broad Church move- ments, and with the birth of a new political and social era. Never alone Come the immortals. This religious awakening was felt and seized by two distinct types of character, or of human tendency, and crystallised by two representative men, by J. H. New- man and Frederick Maurice ; and it is curious for those who care for analogies to the evolution of species to trace how the one was the child of the University of Oxford and the other of the University of Cambridge. The main difference which lay between their method of presenting the faith was a time-difference, if I may be allowed to invent that term. In the matter of religion the past was the foremost thing to Newman, to Maurice Introduction 15 the present. Newman looked back to the past (the nearer to the Apostles the nearer to truth) for the high- est point to which religious life, but not doctrine, had attained, and his immense reverence for the past became part of the mind of Tennyson. But it was balanced in Tennyson by even a greater reverence for the present as containing in it an immediate inspiration and revela- tion from God. This foundation for poetic thought and emotion was given to him by the religious work of Maurice. The deepest thought in the mind of Maurice was that God was moving in the present as fully as He had moved in the past ; and the incessant representa- tion of this, in every form of it, was his great contribu- tion to Theology. Of course, others before him had said similar things, but he said this in a new way, and under new conditions. Maurice could not, however, quite escape from the web of the past, and his struggle to combine the past and the present entangled him, en- tangled his mind, and entangled his followers. When he clung, as he did, to the ancient intellectual formulas as laid down in the Creeds and Services of the Church, and tried to weave them into harmony with his main faith, he damaged his position, and, up to a certain point, his work. Tennyson, as a poet, did not fall into this ill-fortuned position. What his personal views were concerning the creed of Christendom is not the question here. It would be an impertinence to discuss them. That is a private matter, and we shall hear wh*t his family chose 1 6 Tennyson to disclose to us at the fitting time. But his poetry is a public possession, and in that poetry there is naturally no doctrinal confession, no intellectual propositions which define his faith. I say naturally, because art has to do with the illimitable, with that which is for ever in- capable of definition, with the things that belong to love and beauty, joy and hope and veneration — the shapes, degrees, powers, and glory of which are for ever build- ing, un-building, and rebuilding themselves in each man's soul and in the soul of the whole world. Art not only rejects, it abhors all attempts to bind down into un- changing forms the thoughts and emotions which play like lightning round the infinite horizons towards which the imagination sails, piloted by love, and hope, and faith. It has no creeds, no articles of faith, no schemes of salvation, no confessions ; it cannot have them by its very nature. The unknowable, but the believable, is its country, its native land, its home. Whatever, then, in this matter of religion, the man as thinker may confess, the man as poet keeps in the realm of the undefined, beyond analysis, beyond reasoning. When he does not, when he is tempted into analytic dis- cussion, into doctrinal definition, he ceases to be a poet for the time and the trouble into which he gets is pitia- ble. When Milton argues like a school divine, when Wordsworth draws out a plan of education, when Byron explains his view of original sin, how sad it is, how the Muses cover their faces, how angrily Apollo frowns ! Even Dante, who^as obliged to do something of this Introduction 17 kind of work, does it only as a means by which he may launch himself forward into the infinite. And Tenny- son rarely in this way lost his position as an artist. There is no formulated creed in his work. But the main faiths of Maurice, which were assertions of what he conceived to be " eternal verities " concerning the relations of God to man and to the universe, and concerning the end to which God was leading them — assertions backed up by no proof, for the matters in- sisted on could neither be proved nor disproved — were naturally in the realm of the imagination, of faith and hope, in the infinite realm of love, and were brought to receive acceptance or dismissal before the tribunal of human emotion, not before the tribunal of the under- standing. As such they were proper subjects of poetry; and the ever-working immanence of God in man and in the universe as Will and Love, as King and Father ; the necessary brotherhood of man, and the necessary prac- tice of love one to another, if all were in God ; the nec- essary evolution (if this vital union between God and man existed) of the human race into perfect love and righteousness, and the necessary continuance on the same hypothesis of each man's personal consciousness in a life to be ; the necessary vitality of the present — that deep need for high poetic work — man alive and Na- ture alive, and alive with the life of God — these faiths (I will not call them doctrines, for their definition changes incessantly with the progress of human thought and feeling) lay at the root of the religion we find in the 1 8 Tennyson poetry of Tennyson and influenced that poetry from 1830 to 1892. They were part of the elements of the soil out of which his poetry grew, and by them, and by the way in which he held them, carefully keeping them apart from all intellectual definition and in the realm of faith alone, he is separated on the one side from all those poets who either ignore these things like Keats or pro- fess disbelief in them like Shelley, and on the other side from all those poets who like Milton, Byron, or Browning have a definite theology in their poetry. These things, then, may justly be said with regard to the religious elements in the poetry of Tennyson, and they are all contained in In Memoriam ; nay more, they are the very basis of that poem. But the assertion of them does not answer the question : What relation does Tennyson's poetry bear to Christianity ? For all these beliefs might be held by a Theist — even by one who ignored or depreciated the teaching of Jesus. If Tennyson is then to be claimed as a Christian poet it must be shown that he considered Jesus to be the great proclaimer of these truths, the one who concentrated into Himself the religious truths which before Him had been in man, re-formed them in His own thought, and issued them with new power and charged with new love, to claim the belief of men. This certainly was Tenny- son's position.* So far as that goes, Tennyson was distinctly Christian, and this is the position of a great * In Memoriam, xxxvi. Introduction 19 number of persons at the present day. But if that be all, then a great number of persons will deny him the right to call himself a Christian. In their mind a Christian man must have a distinct faith in Jesus as God, as the unique Saviour of man, and as a revealer of God in a way different in kind from that in which we can call any other person a saviour or revealer. Is that view contained in Tennyson's poetry ? We cannot take the phrases concerning Christ used in the Idylls of the King, or such phrases as " Him who died for me " in The May Queen, as any proof of his views, for these might be said to be only local colour ; but when we come to In Memoriam we have before us a poem exceedingly per- sonal and distinctly theological ; and Christ is called there " The Life indeed " ; His power to raise the dead is confessed ; He is the receiver of the souls of the dead into the world beyond this world ; He is the Word of God that breathed human breath and wrought out the faith with human deeds. This is not enough to make Tennyson, as a poet, an orthodox Christian in the doc- trinal sense, but it is enough to place him among those who confess Jesus as the Light of the world, as their spiritual Master, their Life ; and that with a dis- tinctness which does not belong to any other of the great poets of this century, so far as their poetry is concerned. This position becomes a certainty if the introduction to In Memoriam — beginning " Strong Son of God, immortal Love " — be an address to Jesus. I think it is, and that this is the most natural explanation ; but nevertheless it 20 Tennyson is left vague. On the whole, there is no clear doctrinal definition of the person or the work of Christ. What is not left vague, what is quite clear, is that Tennyson is more Christian than Theist ; that no mere Theist could have said the things that he has said in In Memoriam. This absence of definite doctrine, which is the reason many persons say that Tennyson was not a Christian (holding the amusing theory that the Nicene Creed rather than the teaching of Jesus is the test of Christian- ity) is, first of all, necessitated by his art ; secondly, it is in itself Christian. Definite doctrinal statements are, as I said, abhorrent to poetry. They belong to the world of the understanding, to the world of analysis — a world in which the artist cannot breathe at ease, and in which, if he continue, his art decays and dies. They take him out of the illimitable sky in which the imagination flies towards the unknown, the yet unconceived, and the ever-varying unchangeable. Had Tennyson defined his view of Jesus, he would never have said " Ring in the Christ which is to be." In that line the idea of Christ and his Gospel in mankind is given an infinite extension. We may give the phrase fifty meanings, and we shall not exhaust it ; and a hundred years hence it will have totally different meanings allotted to it by the gentlemen who wish to define. Secondly, this absence of propositions invented by the intellect, in which ideas like the immanence of God in man are limited to one meaning, in which the Father- hood of God or the brotherhood of man is rendered Introduction 21 particular instead of being left universal, is in harmony with the teaching of Jesus. He proclaimed truths which He believed to be universal — God's Fatherhood, man's brotherhood, love as the absolute life of God and of man, personal immortality in God, the forgiveness of sin — but He never put these into any fixed intellectual form ; He never attempted to prove them by argument ; He never limited them by a prosiac statement of their import ; He never took them out of the realm of love and faith ; He never gave them a special shape or organised them into a body of belief. He left them free, left them as spirit and life ; and as to their form, every nation and kindred and tongue, every kind of society, nay, every person, could give them whatever intellectual shape each of them pleased. If they were loved and felt, and the love at the root of them expressed in the action of a life, I do not believe that Jesus cared at all what form they took in the understanding, or how they were organised into ritual and creed — -provided only the form or the organisation did not contradict the univer- sality of the love of God, or the universality of the love between man and man which was contained in them. Theological creeds were nothing to Jesus, but their limitations which produced hatreds and cruelties and quarrels, these, to this hour. He looks upon with the pity and the indignation of love. The absence then of definite opinions about infinite truths, which is the neces- sary position of the poet, which was the position of Ten- nyson in his poetry, is the position of Christ Himself. 2 2 Tennyson Again, Christianity does not take the same ground as ethics, nor was Christ, primarily, a moral teacher. " This do and thou shalt live," the moralist says, and it is a good thing to say. " When you have done all," says Jesus, carrying the whole matter of life into boundless aspiration, " say, We are unprofitable servants, we have done only what it was our duty to do." " Lord, how oft shall I forgive my brother ? Unto seven times ? Surely there must be some definition." " Unto seven times ? " answered Christ, in astonishment at any limit to forgiveness — " nay, any number of times — to seventy times seven ! " " All these things," cried the young moralist, " all these duties, I have kept from my youth up. What lack I yet ? " That was the cry of the ideal in him : the inward longing for something more than conduct— for the unknown perfection. And Jesus, answering this aspiration to the ideal, to those unreached summits of love which transcend duty — said, " Sell what thou hast, and give to the poor, and come and follow me." " Whom shall I love," they asked ; " my rela- tions, my friends, my own nation, the members of my Church ? Where is the limit ? " There is no limit, was the teaching of Jesus ; the infinitude of God's love is your true aim. " Love your enemies, do good to them that hate you ; so you will be like your Father in heaven, whose sun shines on the evil and good alike." "Shall I be content with the duties which I can do, with the love I can certainly give to my fellow-men, with the plain things which lie before me in this world, with the Introduction 23 possible in conduct ? " No, thought Jesus, that is not my teaching, nor the ground I take. You must aspire to the impossible, strive to be equal to the infinite Love, love far beyond anything you can understand. It is not the possible, but the perfect, for which you must live. " Be ye perfect in love, even as your Father is perfect in love." Union with the infinite Love by loving ; that is the aim of man, an illimitable aim. At every point this position of Christ is in the strictest analogy to that which the artist takes up with regard to beauty. Love, not duty, is the first thing with Jesus ; the teaching of loving, not the teaching of morality. If love be secured, morality is secured. If a man love God, that is, if he love the living source of love, right- eousness, justice and truth, he is absolutely certain to secure noble conduct. Morality then is not neglected, it is taken in the stride of love. And that is the root of Jesus. Love fulfils the law ; and all the poets, and every artist (whether nominally a Christian or not) take a similar position. Love, in its tireless outgoings to- wards infinite beauty — the seen suggesting for ever the unseen beauty, and that which is conceived of it open- ing out a vision of new loveliness as yet unconceived — is the artists' root ; and whatever morality they teach is the secondary matter, comes as a necessary result of love having its perfect work — love which, when we have reached the farthest horizon we first saw of it, opens out another equally far, and when we have attained that, another, and again another, always and for ever. 24 Tennyson This is the Christian position, and it is the position Tennyson preserves all through his poetry. There is no one, it is true, from whose work better lessons can be drawn for the conduct of life, for morals in their higher ranges, than can be drawn from Tennyson. But below all conduct, as its foundation impulse, lies in this poet's work the love of the infinite Love, the passion of unend- ing effort for it, and the conviction of an eternity of life in which to pursue after it. This eternal continuance in us of the conscious life of love ; in other words, of in- cessant action towards greater nearness to the illimitable Love which is God, is the position of Christ ; and it is the position of one who believes in a personal immor- tality. One of the foundation faiths of Jesus was that every man and woman was as unbrokenly connected with the Eternal God as a child is with a father. God was our nearest relation ; the relationship was a personal one, and could never be untied. In that, our immortal continuance, our immortal personality, our immortal goodness, were necessarily contained. The declaration of immortality was not in itself new, but this ground of it— the Fatherhood of God and the childhood to Him of every man so that each soul was felt by God, in Him- self, as a special person to whom He was in a special relation— this, and the universality of its application, were new. This was Tennyson's position. It might be proved up to the hilt from his poetry, and it makes him clearly Christian. Owing to the circumstances of his time, it Introduction 25 was especially round this question of immortality that Tennyson, in his relation to Christianity, concentrated himself. Its truth held in it for him the Fatherhood of God, the salvation of man, the brotherhood of man, the worth of human life. If it were not true, Christianity in his eyes was not true, there was no God in the universe for man ; there was no true union possible between man and man ; there was no religion — nothing to bind men together ; there was no explanation of the pain of earth, and the whole history of man was a dreadful tragedy. That was his view, and he maintained it with all a poet's fervor. But it would not be true to say that Tennyson had not to fight for it against thoughts within which endeav- oured to betray it, and against doubts which besieged it from without. He did not always repose in it ; he had to fight for it sword in hand, and many a troublous wound he took. He was a poet, sensitive to all the movements of the world around him, and it fell to his lot to live at a time when the faith in immortality has had to run the gauntlet between foes or seeming friends, of a greater variety and of a greater skill than ever before in the history of man. He felt every form of this attack in himself ; he battled with himself as he felt them ; he battled with them outside himself ; and he won his per- sonal victory, having sympathised thus, throughout the course of sixty years, Avith those who have had to fight the same battle. Of what worth his contribution is to the problem is not the question here. I only state the 26 Tennyson fact, and the manner in which it was done. It was done in the manner of a poet — never by argument as such, rarely from the intellectual point of view — but by an appeal to the emotions, by an appeal to the necessities of love. Had he done otherwise, he would have, at that point, ceased to be the poet, ceased to rest the truth of immortality on faith in that unprovable conviction that there was a God and that He was indissolubly bound up with the personality of all of His children. The trouble began early with him. The religious change I have noted in the thirtys disturbed, no doubt, his early faith, and the result is written for us in the Confessions of a Sensitive Mind. Vacillation of faith is the basis of that poem ; and no answer is given to the questions proposed therein. Again, the whole question — on the basis of " Is life worth living? Is it not better not to be ? " — is taken up in The Two Voices. The answer is — " Life is not worth living if it does not con- tinue, if love is not immortal in God and in us." Then The Vision of Sin asks the same question in another form. Sensual pleasure in youth has ended in cynicism in age. What hope ? There is an answer, the poet says, but it is in a tongue no man can understand ; nevertheless it comes out of a horizon where God shows like a rose of dawn. The same question forms the basis of In Memoriam. What is the proper answer to the problem of sorrow, of the loss of those we love — to the cry of the breaking heart all over the world ? Immortal life in God who is Introduction 27 immortal Love, and therefore immortal Life, is the answer ; immortal development — immortal union with all we love ; the never-ending evolution of all into more and more of perfection. One God — one law — one element, And one far-off divine event, To which the whole creation moves. A number of questions arising out of the matter are proposed, many speculations are made, but the answers suggested are all founded, in the necessary manner of a poet, on an appeal to love in us, and to the love which, if there be a supreme goodness, must be at the very root of His being. Lastly, it is plain that Tennyson had, when he finished In Menwriam, settled down into quiet on this matter. He had fought his doubts and laid them. But the time in which he lived did not let him rest. He had again to put on his armour and to draw his sword. The argu- ment of Darwin that our conscience and our emotions came by descent from the brutes was used as an argu- ment against immortality. The great development of physiological science tended to increase among persons of a certain set of mind a naked materialism, more or less cynical ; and especially went against all beliefs, like that of immortality, which could not be tested by experiment. Then, all the outward authority on which the Christian faith had long reposed, the grey-haired, authority of the Church, the younger authority of the infallibility of the Bible, was shaken to its foundations by the application 28 Tennyson of the science of historical criticism to the New Tes- tament stories and to the history of the Early Church, so that the outward authority for immortality passed away from the minds of multitudes, and with it that which is bound up with it — the belief in a Divine Father of mankind. And, now, among those — the greater number, it is true — who still clung to these faiths, there was no longer peace. Doubts, incessant questions troubled them ; faith veiled her face for long periods. Men and women fought and still fight for the truths dearest to them, as Arthur fought with his foes in that dim, weird battle of the West, in a chill and blinding vapour, and looking up to heaven only see the mist. Then it was that Tennyson — and it is from his poetry alone that I gather this — shaken out of his certainty in In Memoriam, feeling all the new trouble of the world, took up again the sword against his own questionings and against the scepticism of the world in which he lived. The mystery of the pains of life, side by side with a God of love, deepened around him. No creed, no faith, seemed to completely answer it. But all the more, he felt that the only chance of an answer was in clinging to the conviction of a life to come in which all shall be wrought into union with God. Once or twice he was carried beyond tolerance into hot indignation with those who took away what he believed to be the only reply to the problem of pain and evil. In his poem of Despair he denounced the " know- Introduction 29 nothings," as he called them, as well as the liars who held eternal punishment, and with equal wrath and vigour. In The Promise of May he painted, and unfairly, the materialist as almost necessarily immoral. He need not have been so angry, and he did no good by the passages of attack in those poems. Had he believed more at the time he wrote them he would not have been so violent. He would have felt that, if all men were God's children, it mattered little whether these persons denied immor- tality or not. They would find out the truth in the end, and their disbelief could do no final harm to them or to mankind. However, as his life went on, his anger seemed to pass away. He resumed his old method of warfare — the method of the artist — the appeal to love, the appeal to the heart of man, the appeal to the incred- ibility of all the glory and all the growth of man, of all the dreadfulness of his fate, being alike closed in univer- sal death. Many are the poems in his later volumes, poems like Vastness, for example, which take up this artist-position. At last, as it seems, all his distress ceased in quiet, in a faith even more settled than that of In Memoriam. Some trouble still lives in the last volume, published while he was yet alive. Vastness still strikes a wavering note. He says in another poem that, " In spite of every creed and faith, Life is the Mystery." In the poem. By an Evolutionist, the end seems a matter of hope rather than of certainty. The last poem in the book, Crossing the Bar, is the first clear cry of happy faith — all doubt and trouble past ; and it is a quiet 30 Tennyson faith that persists through the new volume which con- tains his last words to the people of England. The Making of Man, while it accepts evolution, carries it onward to the perfect accomplishment of all humanity in God : Hallelujah to the Maker. It is finished. Man is made. The Dreamer has no uncertainty. Doubt and Prayer and Faith, the one following the other, assert that " Love is his Father, Brother, and his God," and that Death flings open the gates of all that we desire in the heart. God and the Universe, written on the threshold of death, reveals that all the fear of dissolution has gone for ever. " The face of Death is toward the Sun of Life — his truer name is ' Onward,' " so the poet speaks again to the mourners in the last poem of his last book. This faithful fighter then, who stood, like Horatius, for sixty years defending the strait bridge of faith in immortal life, defending it against his own doubts and those of his time, laid down his arms at last, conscious of his victory. Time will tell whether it is a victory also for us. For my part, I have no shadow of doubt as to the conclusion the world will finally come to on this matter ; and when that conclusion is reached, the long battle of Tennyson for the Christian faith, for God as the Father of all, and for the necessary inference of immortality from that primary declaration of Christ Jesus, will be acknowledged by the steady gratitude of mankind. Introduction 31 III Tennyson's Relation to Social Politics. — I now turn, in this Introduction, to Tennyson's relation to the movement of Humanity. In literature as in Nature there is continuity of de- velopment, and the germs of the subjects which the new poetry of any generation develops into full-foli- aged trees are to be found in the poetry which pre- ceded that new poetry. The poetry of Nature, as fully written by Wordsworth, Shelley, and Keats, had, as it were, a child-life before their time. The theo- logical poetry of Browning, of Tennyson, of a host of minor poets, arose out of certain tendencies of thought and emotion which were expressed, in opposi- tion to the orthodox theology of their time, by Byron and Shelley. The various forms of the poetry of human life, and especially of the poetry of human progress, which the poets embodied from the year 1830 to the year 1870, were outlined, as it were, in the poetry of the first thirty years of this century. In what man- ner Tennyson developed the poetry of Nature is a fasci- nating subject ; but it will best be treated in connection with his poems. What he did with regard to the theo- logical shapes which emerged in his time has already received notice. What did he say of the subjects which belong to the growth of humanity towards a better society ? What relation did he bear to social politics, if I may use that term ? With the impulse given by Reform in 1832, a number 32 Tennyson of questions belonging to social progress were reawak- ened into a fuller life, and took new forms. Was the power of government best placed in the hands of the whole people, or in the hands of great men ? It is plain that Tennyson answered with Carlyle that great men (provided they had, like Wellington, a supreme sense of duty, a proviso Carlyle did not always insert) were those in whose hands power should dwell. Freedom, in his conception of it, was safer with them. The voice of the people, he thought, was a babbling voice, for the people were led by mere orators. Tennyson was never democratic at heart. He never understood what democ- racy in its reality meant, much less did he ever conceive its ideal. He was always an aristocrat, though he would have said, with justice, that it was a government of the best men that he desired, and not a government of rank and birth alone. Rank and birth, when they were un- worthy of their privileged position, he despised and de- nounced, because they were inhuman. But I do not think that he ever wished that rank should be dissolved, or privileges overthrown, or that he even conceived the idea that the people of themselves were to choose the best men. He saw (from his poetic point of view) that all men were equal in their relations to the common feelings and duties of the race ; that in suffering, in love, in the desire of right and justice, in the visions and longings of youth and age, there was an eternal equality ; and, like all the great poets, his work in this realm of thought has drawn men and women of all Introduction 33 ranks and classes into a closer sympathy with one an- other, and placed them hand in hand on a common ground of humanity ; but when it came to extending that community of human relationship into the political or the social sphere, he not only drew back, he did not understand what this meant. The Republicanism with which Wordsworth and Coleridge were at first enchanted, and from which they afterwards retreated ; the revolu- tionary spirit of Byron and his crusade against respecta- bility ; the more deliberate wrath of Shelley with the whole of the idols and oppression of a society founded as he believed on caste and force and not on equality and love, were one and all wholly unrepresented by Tennyson, nay, they were implicitly attacked by him. His whole conception of law and government, and of freedom, excluded them from its circle. Not in his hands, then, lay the development of the seeds which Shelley had scattered in his manhood. No, nor even those which Wordsworth had sown in his youth. He was much more, on this side, the true successor of Keats, to whom all these political and social questions were, because of their apparent ugliness, repulsive ; and who took refuge from them in the stories of the Greeks and of the Renaissance out of which time had with- drawn the coarse and left the beautiful. But Keats lived at a time when there was no national emotion, when men were really weary of the democratic ideas, and he represents that weariness. Tennyson, on the contrary, did live in a time of national emotion, and 34 Tennyson though he partly followed Keats in a retreat to the past, yet he could not altogether, even had he desired it, loosen himself from the excitement which encompassed him. His age was vividly with him, and he wrote of patriotism, of the proper conception of freedom, of the sad condition of the poor, of the woman's position in the onward movement of the world, of the place of commerce and science in that movement, of war as the remedy for the selfishness and evils of commerce, and of the future of the race. These are the main things he touched, and of them all it is true that they were questions which had been outlined in the previous poetic period, and outlined in the new forms they took after 1832. The first of these is Patriotism. I have said that he felt strongly the vitality of the present in which he lived. But he also brought into the present an immense reverence for the past, and that is one of the strongest foundations of his patriotism. The poem, which begins Love thou thy land, with love far-brought From out the storied Past, is but one of the hundred utterances, the note of which remained the same clear sound from the beginning to the end. It was a pity that the emotion was chiefly given to the warlike glories of England by land and sea, and but little bestowed on the long and more glorious though fameless struggle of people and towns for civic liberty ; Introduction 35 but we may well excuse the poet's preference for valour and for death in behalf of the honour of the land in the striking circumstance of war. This is more vivid for verse, and The Revenge : A Ballad of the Fleet, and The Defence of Lucknow, and The Charge of the Light Brigade, will always stir English hearts. Moreover, no one has better dwelt on the noble ele- ments of English character, their long descent to us from the past, and the sacred reverence that we owe to them, than Tennyson. He has strengthened, by the ex- pression of this reverence, love of country among this people, and the strength he has thus added to it will endure as a power in England. It will be more than a power. It will be a voice to recall us to reverence when, in the push onwards to a future liberty and in the heated atmosphere of that strife, we tend to forget how much we owe to the ancient forms and to the by-gone men, the results of whose work we may put aside as unfitted for the present time. For if in our excitement for the fu- ture we lose reverence for the past, the loss of reverence will so injure the soul of the nation that when we gain our objects in the time to come, we shall not be able to keep them nobly or to use them rightly. No splendid future, splendid in that just feeling for righteousness and love which hinders the despotism that so often succeeds a wholly irreverent revolution, can be won by a nation which has forgotten veneration for its magnanimous past. The work of Tennyson, in this point of patriot- ism, is altogether fine and true. 36 Tennyson Nevertheless, it had its extreme. It ran sometimes into an English Chauvinism, and in this extreme Tenny- son became, with a curious reversion to the type of the Englishmen of Nelson's time, the natural opponent, even the mocker of France and the French character. The words which, at the end of The Princess, he puts into the mouth of the Tory member's son, represent a part of his own point of view, though they are modified in the reply that follows. Phrases like The red fool-fury of the Seine, show how he looked on the passionate forms which po- litical ideas had received in France, and the one-sided view he took of our neighbours' character. He saw only the evil of these things, just because he was so exclu- sively of the solid English type. Now and again the natural variety of a poet made him attempt to see the other side, as in the answer to the Tory member's son. But it was against the grain. He saw but little of what France has done for us ; he had no gratitude to her for her audacity, her swiftness, her logical expansion into form of the thoughts of progress ; he did not see or feel that much of the freedom we have lately won was owing to England's calm contemplation, with a certain amount of pleasurable but base contempt, of the mistakes which France alone had the boldness and the self-sacrifice to make for the world. He did not see our cool acceptance of the results for liberty which emerged after the mis- takes of France had run their course. She bore the Introduction 37 consequences of her mistakes, but in exhausting these she set the true form of certain ideas of liberty clear. We take the ideas she has set free, but we forget that she revealed them. There has been no ingratitude so great in the history of humanity as the ingratitude of Europe to France, and Tennyson represented with great vividness this ingratitude in England. Hence, or rather along with this, he did not, except now and then in vague suggestions, carry the love of country forward into the love of mankind. He had but little sympathy in his poetry with other nations. At this point he is far behind Coleridge, Wordsworth, Byron, and Shelley. The only struggles for freedom with which he openly sympathises were those of Poland in his youth, and of Montenegro in his age. The battle of Italy for liberty is scarcely mentioned. The struggle of the North against slavery in the United States is never touched. Nor could he write, and this illustrates still further his insulation, as Browning wrote, of Italy, of Spain, of France, of modern Greece, of men and women's lives away from England. He never became international. The higher conception to which love of our own nation is to lead — the love of all nations as contained in one nation, the nation of Man — did not shine in the mind of Tennyson. It arose into clear form with the French Revolution ; it has taken a new and a better form in modern times, but none of its de- velopments were sympathised with, were even conceived by Tennyson. He was at this point over-English. He 38 Tennyson is, at this point, out of sympathy with the progress of Man. He is not, at this point, our poet, or the poet of the future. Again, take the idea of human freedom ; which, thrown as it was by Shelley into the arena where the young emotions of the present contend with grey-haired theories of the past, became a much more actual consid- eration in all national life after 1832. That idea is not only freedom to speak the thing we will, or freedom of act or contract, or such national liberty only as all Eng- lishmen enjoy — but the setting free of all members of the State by the State from all that hinders the full development of every citizen. This is what it has now become within the last thirty years. But it was nothing like that in 1832. It was a bourgeois, not a popular, re- form which was then initiated ; and the poor were as much neglected by it, as the middle class had been be- fore it. But the disturbance it caused extended down- wards to the labouring classes, then quite uneducated ; and the riots and excesses that arose made short-sighted persons doubt the expediency of even the measure of Reform given in 1832. These riots and violences were caused by the misery and by the neglect of the poor, and they seemed mere mob-furies to men of a quiet type, like Tennyson. Such men felt themselves forced to consider over again the idea of freedom ; and the reaction from what seemed revolutionary action on the one side, and on the other side from Utopias like Shel- ley's, was extreme. Introduction 39 One would have thought that a poet, touched by the reality of misery and its exceeding bitter cry, would have held the balance equally poised at least, and not yielded too far to the reaction ; that he would have had indignation at the state of society, and been inwardly urged to give, in the manner of a prophet, some predic- tion of a hope near at hand for the woes and weakness of the oppressed. But though there are many passages where Tennyson does try to hold an equal balance, and to excuse or even to advocate the impassioned rising of the oppressed in speech or act against their fate, these passages are short, are tentative ; he is, as it were, forced into them ; and the main line he takes is the line of careful protection of the old against the onset of the new, of steady but very prudent advance through obe- dience to existing law, of protest against that which he calls " raw haste," of discouraging of indignant speech and act on the part of the people, of distrust, even of contempt, for what seemed to him the mob and for their " lawless din " ; and, in consequence of all this, he puts off the regeneration of society to a period so far away that it may be counted by thousands and thousands of years. It is with almost a scientific analysis of the whole question of the future society, and with arguments drawn from geology (as if humanity were in close anal- ogy to Nature), that he predicts the enormous time in which the betterment or the perfection of society will be wrought. He had really little or no faith in man as man, but he had faith in man as conducted, in reasona- 40 Tennyson ble obedience, to the final restitution by an entity which he called law, and which was, in reality, his own con- ception of the Constitution of England built up into power, not by the people, but by a few great men and by the bulk of the educated and landed classes who alone were fit to direct the blind forces of the people. I do not say that he did not slide out of this position here and there in his poetry. He could scarcely help it as a poet, but nevertheless this was his main position, and on the whole he kept to it all his life. It was not altogether his standing-place when he was young. A different spirit inflames the lines which begin : And Freedom rear'd in that august sunrise Her beautiful bold brow, When rites and forms before his burning eyes Melted like snow. That, and the rest of them, smack of the passionate poet. But this vague fire did not last. A batch of poems : You ask me why tho' ill at ease — Of old sat Freedom on the heights — Love thou thy land — mark his new position — that of a man who, like the constitution of a land Where freedom slowly broadens down From precedent to precedent, "regards gradation, lest the soul of Discord race the rising wind," and sits (distrusting all that is not accu- rately balanced, all that shares in political emotion whether of wrath or eager love) apart from those stormier miseries of man which seem to double when- Introduction 41 ever men eagerly desire for their lives a greater freedom of development. I do not presume to blame him for this. On the contrary, this position towards the prog- ress of man in freedom, this " nor swift, nor slow to change, but firm " ; this quiet maturing, in self-control, of liberty ; make this close respect for law a standing- place necessary to be preserved. It is, in fact, that of the sturdy good sense of England, led to this conclusion by careful reasoning on the past, and by an intellectual analysis of the course of its history. I should be very sorry to lose the ballast of the boat. But when it is the only position taken up by the army of freedom, it ends in the overwhelming of freedom for a time. It becomes blind and deaf to the woes of man. And it is always a position in which it is surprising to find a poet. One would think that he would naturally be in the other great division of the army of freedom — on the side of the inarticulate emotions of the people — supporting that struggle for freedom of growth which is inspired by indignation against oppression, or by im- pulsive pity which rushes into act ; which is driven on by faiths which do not argue ; by hopes which have little ground in experience ; by aspirations towards all that at present seems impossible ; by the fire of the greater passions whose speech and deeds seem madness to the steady world. This is the side which the poet, when he thinks of freedom for man, naturally takes. Wordsworth took it, Coleridge took it, Byron took it, Shelley took it, Browning took it, but — Tennyson did 42 Tennyson not ! His was the view of the common-sense, well- ordered Englishman — of Whiggism in her carriage with a very gracious smile and salute for Conservatism in hers —and he tried, unhappily as I think, to get this view into poetry. Through the whole of Tennyson's poetry about the problem of man's progress, this view of his does damage to the poetry ; lowers the note of beauty, of aspiration, of fire, of passion ; and lessens the use of his poetry to the cause of freedom. If the poet take the unpoetic side of any question he gives no help to mankind, so far as the question concerns mankind. The same things said in prose are very good sense, and in harmony with their vehicle. But, said in poetry, they sound wrong ; they seem unnatural ; and they harm the cause they intend to support. It had been far more right and natural, had Tennyson taken up the other side — a side just as necessary, even more necessary, for the advance of human freedom than the side of cautious and lawful development of liberty — the side of the rushers, of the enthusiastic seekers, of the wild warriors, of the sacrifi- cers whom the world calls insane, of the indignant men whose speech and action Tennyson thought were " blind hysterics of the Celt." That way poetry lies : and that way lies the permanent influence of a poet on humanity, ^o far as this question is concerned. This unfortunate position — not in itself, for I have maintained it as quite a true position for one half of the army of freedom to support, but unfortunate for a Introduction 43 poet — threw his poetry on matters related to the full and free development of mankind out of gear. He some- times got curiously in the wrong, as on the subject of war. He became unpoetically hopeless with regard to the future, wavering to and fro without any fixed or luminous faith in progress ; having a distant and half laisscz faire sympathy with the sorrows of the people, and seeing — and this is the strangest of all — a remedy for their sor- rows in the greater growth of commerce as it exists at present, and in the further development of practical science hand in hand with commerce. When we read these things in poetry we say ; " Why, this is wondrous strange ! " When he does express indignation for the miseries of the poor and against the cause of them — the unbridled competition of commerce — he puts that indignation into the mouth of the half-hysterical and morbid lover of Maud, or into the mouth of the lover in Locksley Hall, when he has grown old. Moreover, he does not speak from himself, but in the voice of the characters he draws, men wanting in " self-reverence, self-knowledge, self- control." A false light is thus thrown on the sorrows of the poor. It is as if half of them existed only in the morbid fancies of men. At least, there is no vital sym- pathy expressed for them ; and, indeed, Tennyson lived apart from this suffering world and knew nothing about it. He vaguely sees that ruthless competition is at the bottom of these evils, but he looks for the extension of that system of commence which is based on and makes 44 Tennyson competition as one of the main elements in the fully developed happiness of mankind. He vaguely sees that mechanical science has been made the slave of competition, and has increased, through this unhappy union, the troubles at the bottom of society, but he looks for the fuller development of the present system by science as one of the means of redeeming these evils. He sees plainly that the world is wrong, but he seems to think that it is to be cured by the slow and steady improvement of the present social and com- mercial system, tempered, when it gets too bad, by wars. He sees, or Maud's lover sees, that this system leads to organised selfishness ; that men become, under it, materialised ; that the higher qualities of the heart and soul are crushed by it — and this is the subject of the be- ginning of Maud, and of a few other poems. What is his remedy ? Not the abandonment of the system, and not a crusade against the causes of these evils, not even any legislative attempt to lessen them, but a war, in which " commerce should not be all in all, and noble thought be freer under the sun," in which men should " feel with their native land, and be one with their kind," in which the desire of self-sacrifice should again awake in the country. Of all means of cure suggested for the evils of competition, war is the most foolish, and it doubles the misfortunes of the poor. Those who are sacrificed the most in battle, and tortured to death by thousands, and who get none of the personal glory, are the poor. The taxes are doubled, and the doubling falls heaviest Introduction 45 on the poor. The competition and the cheating of those capitalists who happen to desire to increase their store at any cost are increased in war-time. The selfish are made more selfish ; the troubles of the poor workmen are trebled ; the army suffers and starves, and dies of cold and misery — as we found out, only too well, in the Crimean war. A costly medicine it was ! This is not the way to remedy the ills of the people, nor is it the best way to develop self-sacrifice, noble thought, civic honour or justice in a people. There is another way in which the call for civic self-sacrifice en- ters into the daily and hourly life of every citizen ; but that way, which forms now the basis of all action and prophecy towards a nobler society, did not enter into the poetry of Tennyson at all, and its absence left him no expedient for curing a selfish society but the clumsy expedient of war. I make no complaint against Tennyson for all this. I only state the case. If he was of this temper, it was because it was mainly the temper of the time in which he grew to his maturity, the thirty years from his first volume to the end of the sixties. He represented the political and social opinions of that time very fairly, but not as a poet who had much prophetic fire and pity in him would be expected to write. Nor did he make any impetuous casts into the future when he wrote of these things, save once in Locksley Hall. In these matters, he was not before his age, nor when the age changed did he change with it. He remained for another thirty 46 Tennyson years in precisely the same position, while the world changed round him. His poetry on other matters con- tinued to exalt and console the world, to illuminate it with beauty and grace and tender thought. He has been a blessing to us all in a thousand ways in these last thirty years. But on the matters of which I treat of here, he was either silent or in opposition to the ideas of a higher liberty. Collectivism, for example, which be- gan to grow up about 1866 (which, while it was in op- position to the individualism which so rapidly developed after 1832, yet holds in it a much greater opportunity for complete individuality than we have even conceived as yet) does not seem to have even dawned on the mind of Tennyson. He is behind the whole of this move- ment — the master movement of our time. In matters then of this kind he is not the poet of the people. He is our poet in the things which he treated poetically ; and in those which have to do with Nature and God and the sweet, honest and tender life of men and women, he will remain our poet as long as the language lasts, but in these social matters not. One only subject of this kind he treated well and as a poet, and that was the question of woman and her relation to modern life ; a question which was started by Shelley, and which occu- pied a great place in poetry after 1832. As far as he saw into that matter, he saw it with freedom and clear- ness and love, and The Princess is a real contribution to that subject. But that stands alone. In all other mat- ters belonging to the progress of society, he does not Introduction 47 belong to the last thirty years, to our time, our hopes, or our faith ; nor does he think and feel in them as a poet. Look, in conclusion, at the faith he had concerning the future of mankind, at the hopes he entertained for it. Was he swept away, as the poets are, into high pre- diction ? Did he realise by faith that a better time might be near at hand ? No, embayed in these con- servative doctrines, unable to loosen himself from their ice, he had enough of the logic of a poet to see that, supposing they were all true, the progress of society towards a better and a perfect life must be of almost an infinite slowness ; so very slow, so very far away, that man in the present is left all but hopeless. There is nothing in Tennyson in this matter of the rush or the faith of the prophet. The impulse he gives is faint, and his hope is only too like despair. The young man of Locksley Hall repents when he is old of almost all the enthusiasms of his youth : Forward far and far from here is all the hope of eighty years. In the very last book, the " Ghost of the brute " in men may be laid, but only in a hundred thousand years, or in a million summers away. Before the crowning age arrive in the making of man, aeon after aeon shall pass. " We are far from the noon of man, there is time for the race to grow." Time ! when half the world and more are in torture ! It ought not to be in a poet to take things so easily. It 48 Tennyson is true that Tennyson looks beyond this world, and sees the sorrowful made blessed there, and, indeed, I hold that to be the truest of consolations. But if it is to make us take evils easily here — we especially who are com- fortable — I hold that it is not unwise to put it out of our minds for a time ; and it may be that the general disbe- lief in immortality has its deepest ground in that feeling, and perhaps its reason. For my part, I do not think we have any right to think of a heaven for others, much less of a heaven for ourselves in the world to come, until we are wholly determined to make this world a heaven for our fellow-men, and are hoping, believing, loving, and working for that, and for its realisation not in a thousand or a million years, but in a nearer and a nearer future. That is what a poet should feel and write for nowadays. That should be the passion in his heart and the fire in his verse. CHAPTER I THE POEMS OF 183O IT is fortunate for the historian of poetry in this century that the close of each school of poetry is so clearly divided from the rise of its successor. Shelley, Byron, and Keats died within a few years of eadh other, between 182 1 and 1824. Wordsworth, Coleridge, Southey, Landor, and Walter Scott (though they lived beyond 1824) belonged to a school which preceded that of Byron, Shelley, and Keats. They overlapped the lives of these three poets, but all the three had arisen when Wordsworth and the rest had done their best work. They represent other spheres of thought, and embody other worlds of emotion. Byron, enamoured of his own powerful personality, and rejoicing in his isolation from the crowd while he was angry with its attack upon him, proud and vain at the same time, laughed to scorn the peaceful, proper, prim, and comfortable life into which the English middle class had subsided after the peace of 1815, and held up himself as its poetic contrast — the lonely, soul-shattered wanderer whom a quiet home-life 4 49 50 Tennyson revolted, who preferred, for choice, to live like the Giaour or the Corsair— and who finally attacked all the respect- able hypocrisy of England in the revolutionary mockery of Don yuan. He did this needful work with exaggera- tion, but had it not been done with exaggeration, it would not perhaps have rescued England's poetry from the ideal of George III. No temper can be a greater contrast than Byron's on the one side to that of his predecessor, Words- worth, and on the other to that of his successor, Tennyson. Byron did not like — and I put it mildly — the philosophic gentlemen of The Excursion ; he would have disliked still more the Arthur of the Idylls of the King. Indeed, it was high time, when poetry in the hands of Tennyson had dwelt so much on the conservative, law-abiding, and regular elements of life as to make us fear that the more audacious and freer elements beyond conven- tional society would be lost to poetry, that Swinburne should again, like Byron, bring in the revolutionary spirit, and attack that temper in poetry which, in weaker hands than Tennyson's, might again degenerate into Pharisa- ism and put the imagination into a coop like a goose at Strasbourg. The way Swinburne did it in his youth was open to objections — poets, by their very nature, sweep into wild exaggeration of their revolts — but it was well that it was done. Byron did the same thing in his time. He was at this point the child of the literature which preceded the Revolution. His movement of mind and emotion is part of the storm which began to blow in the eighteenth century. The Poems of 1830 51 Shelley was also its child, but he represented his parent in a very different manner from Byron. He was not personal ; he did not attack the existing society with mockery. He did not praise the isolated or the corsair life, nor the immoral life. He lived as he pleased, it is true, and he left English society severely alone. But he was concerned chiefly with ideas, and what he attacked were the evil things which hindered the progress of man- kind. He hated despotisms ; he hated those religious views which enslaved the soul, and those persons who used these views for the sake of power. As such, he went back, when the political aim of the Revolution was dead in England, to the original ideas of the Revolution. He took up their all but extinguished torch, and waved it round and round his head, till in his hands it took fire again. It was only for a time. He had not power enough to keep it kindled, and finally he left behind him all hope of realising in his own time the ideas of equality. What he did do, was to conceive in his own mind the regeneration of society and the overthrow of its evils ; and to sing of what humanity would be in the future ; and it is his undying hope in this regeneration of man, his faith and love of it, and the power with which he has infused it into men, for which we owe him an endless gratitude. This was the last effort of this school of poetry ap- plied to the conditions of the world of its own time, the last recognition these poets gave to their present. It was also the last breath for the time of the impulse 52 Tennyson given to song by the early ideas of the Revolution. The poetry of this century, up to this point, had been fre- quently concerned with the social and political move- ment, with the European struggle, with ethical or theo- logical forms of thought, with the life and feelings of the poor, with the glory of the past, with humanity at large, with philosophies and theories of the race and its destiny. But now poetry ceased to speak of these matters. And no wonder! The poets received no im- pulse from without. There was no care for an ideal life left in England, no interest in the future condition of man, no enthusiasm of humanity. England was sick of social, political, and theological matters, of theories of life. " Let me alone," it said, " torment me not ; " and it fell into a materialism which stopped its ears to every voice likely to disturb its dull repose. Wordsworth felt this even in 1806, ten years before its fulness, when he wrote that sonnet on the besotted state of the country — The world is too much with us : late and soon. Getting and spending, we lay waste our powers : Little we see in Nature that is ours ; We have given our hearts away — a sordid boon ! a sonnet which ends, having declared that mankind was out of tune with natural beauty, in one of his rare out- bursts of passion — a cry for deliverance from a stagnant world — Great God ! I 'd rather be A Pagan suckled in a creed outworn ; So might I, standing on this pleasant lea, The Poems of 1830 53 Have glimpses that would make me less forlorn ; Have sight of Proteus rising from the sea ; Or hear old Triton blow his wreathed horn. Keats felt the same loss of joy and life in the world with a shock of misery, and expressed it. " Glory and loveliness," he cried, " have passed away." What did he do ? The present said nothing to his imagination. No wind from it blew upon his soul and awakened the flowers in its garden. He had no care for the theolo- gies, for social theories, for humanity at large, for its future destiny. Living alongside of Byron and Shelley, he had nothing to do with their interests. He was, practically, living after them, in a world which did not share in a single one of their emotions. But emotions are necessary to a poet, and if he cannot get them in the present, and if the future be nothing to him, as it is nothing to the man who is not excited by the present, he must seek for his emotions in the past. There, in that bygone world, is the beauty, or the romance, which he cannot find beside him ; or there, at least, he sees and feels it. It was in the past that Keats chose to live, quite away from England. The Pagan world to which Wordsworth wished to return in his temporary passion, Keats always desired to have with him. He sang of Endymion in the woods and caves of Latmos. He sang of young life at Athens ; he sang of a more ancient world and of the primeval gods. He sang of Lorenzo and Isabella in mediaeval Florence ; he sang of Porphyro and Madeline in a world which has 54 Tennyson no history. And the only thing he saw in the present which was worth a song was the doings of Nature, whose youth is everlastingly lovely, and who has nothing to do with man. His poetry, therefore, represents the complete ex- haustion of the fire of the Revolution, the complete abandonment of the present as able to give any impulse to the poet ; and if no new impulse had come to stir England to her depths, to place all the old problems in a new light, which light also brought with it a kind- ling fire, to awaken new interest in the life of the pres- ent and in the strife of humanity to its goal, poetry would have altogether ceased after Keats. The past alone does not supply enough fuel to keep up the fires of the imagination. And, indeed, we see that plainly enough in the his- tory of the time. No poet of any vivid eagerness, much less of any originality, appeared now for some years. The poetry which was produced, with the single exceptions of Landor, aud of Wordsworth (whose work, though it had lost youth, was still weighty with power and grave sentiment), was either an imitation of past models, or pale, pretty, washed-out work like that of Mrs. Hemans, with an easy melody and a slipshod senti- ment. Every one knew the methods, the images, the very rhymes that were used. All was convention, naught was art. The Poems of Two Brothers, written by Alfred Tennyson and his brother, and published in 1827 — a The Poems of 1830 55 collection of their very youthful efforts — illustrate this point. They are without one trace of originality, force, or freshness — faded imitations of previous poets, chiefly of Byron ; or, where not imitative, full of the futile mod- esty of boyhood, which would fain be vain but does not dare ; made up partly of bold noise and partly of senti- mentality, accurately true to the type of the English poetry between the death of Shelley and the publication of Tennyson's volume of 1830. It is one of the literary puzzles of the world that certain great poets, as, for example, Shelley and here Tennyson, write trash in their boyhood ; and within a year or two step on to a level of original power. What happens in the meantime to make the change ? It is not as if these boyish poems were only poor work. Shelley's verses before Queen Mab were detestable. Tennyson's verses in the Poems of Two Brothers, were only not quite so bad. But they were in complete harmony with the poetry of the time. Along with this dishevelled work there was a wonder- ful flourishing of criticism. Reviews and weekly papers explained what poetry was, and slashed and praised the poets past, present, and even to come. The more poetry decayed, the more eagerly the critics dissected her body, till, when any living poetry really appeared, they (having been accustomed to the lifeless poetry) cried out at the living thing as something too horrible to be endured. This is the fate and the punishment of criticism of the Arts done for the sake of criticism. The more, then, the critics think they see, the blinder they become. 56 Tennyson Along with this there was necessarily a highly cultured literary class, who were indeed chiefly made up of the critics, and who wrote incessantly about literature, but rarely created any — just such a class as exists to-day revel- ling in their academic excellence ; who do two things, both equally foolish, overblame what is new, or over- praise it ; having special enmities or special affec- tions, and equally damaging those they abuse and those they praise. The one thing of which, as a body, they are almost incapable, is the recognition of that which is really good, which has in it life, continuance, and power. As only one or two men (and those poets themselves) saw what was in Wordsworth, Shelley, or Keats when they published their second volumes, so only one or two saw what was in the earlier volumes of Tennyson and Browning. Tennyson's poems of 1830 were, with the exception of about a dozen, very much like the other poetry of the time. But those new things set Tennyson apart. He who wrote them was quite certain to write better and better poetry. They were original in their metre (which was poor), in word-painting, in the use of words, in thought, and in the way in which emotion was reached and seized and shaped. The same originality, but to a greater degree, belongs to Browning's first poem. My business, however, is Tennyson, and 1 will now place, in connection with what I have said, his earliest emer- gence as an original poet. That emergence is first seen in the Cambridge Prize Poem — 1829 — of Timbuctoo, The Poems of 1830 57 and in The Lover's Tale, written the year before, when he was nineteen years old. Tennyson withdrew The Lover's Tale from publication after he had printed it in 1833, but on its being pirated in 1879, published it with its continuation, The Golden Supper, in 1879. The poem tells of a boy and a girl who are brought up to- gether. The boy falls into passionate love with the girl ; the girl cares for him only as a sister and tells him in her innocent confidence that she loves his friend Lionel. The misery of this to the boy is the whole sub- ject of the poem. It is full of the metaphysics of sor- row, and of the fantastic play of words and thoughts with which the Elizabethans described the poetry of unhappy love. It seems plain from many passages that Tennyson had read at this time the Sonnets of the Amourists, and the work of the love-poets of the age of James the First. Here is one of these passages : It was ill-done to part you, Sisters fair ; Love's arms were wreath'd about the neck of Hope, And Hope kiss'd Love, and Love drew in her breath In that close kiss, and drank her whisper'd tales. They said that Love would die when Hope was gone. And Love mourn'd long, and sorrow'd after Hope ; At last she sought out Memory, and they trod The same old paths where Love had walk'd with Hope, And Memory fed the soul of Love with tears. This metaphysic of fantasy — an embroidery of the per- sonified passions as on a tapestry, and represented in successive pictures — does not stand alone. It is fre- 5$ Tennyson quent in this early poem, and it became in after-times, but greatly improved in its usage, a habit of the poet. Many instances of it occur in In Memoriam. The lover's sorrow is also mingled up with Nature. Every natural description illustrates and reflects the changing moods of the characters : so early did Tenny- son begin this consistent habit of his art. Two or three vivid descriptions and a few happy single lines that iso- late natural phenomena, prove how far he had left behind him the aimless looseness of the Poems of Two Brothers, but do not prophesy the distinctive power which Tenny- son had afterwards over Nature. The one charm of the poem is its youthfulness. The lavishness, the want of temperance, the inability to stop when enough has been said, the welling-over of words, the boyishness of senti- ment, the playing at sorrow — while they prove that Tennyson was right in withdrawing the poem from pub- lication — nevertheless give us pleasure, the pleasure of touching youth. Next year he wrote Timbudoo. It is not at all like a prize poem, and to be original in a prize poem was so audacious that it is a clear proof that Tennyson had become conscious of his proper power. He intimated no more. Some lines in it are fine, but its main interest is that his conception of the subject proves that he had now seen that Fable was a great storehouse of poetic material. He builds the Timbuctoo of fable ; a vision like that of El Dorado. He weaves it through and through with spiritual thought. The excitement and The Poems of 1830 59 the method are the same as those he feh and used when he began to take up the legend of Arthur. Neither of these poems, however, had anything to do with English life, or was influenced by the movements of the time. Nor did the poet appeal in them to the public. That step was made by the volume of 1830, and of what kind it was, and moved by what impulses, is now the matter in hand. I have maintained that when Keats died there was no national excitement in England, no emotional movement towards either a social or political betterment of life, no care for ideas such as will make a poet feel the thrill of humanity in the present. Without that, he may write, like Keats, for a time about the past, but he will not produce a new poetic world. Well, this excitement of the nation was supplied to Tennyson and to Browning. The reform movement had now begun and was coming to its height. A new religious movement also began, and had taken two forms before three years passed by ; one towards a greater freedom of religious thought, and another towards a vitalising of Church doctrine and ritual. Both contained a greater intensity of self-sacri- fice than had been known for years, and a greater development of practical work for the poor and the sorrowful. Both were an extension of the love of man, and carried with them an emotion which ran rapidly through England. Along with these two opposite ten- dencies of religious thought there was, of course, and owing to their clashing, an awakening of spiritual doubt, questioning and trouble which made a host of men 6o Tennyson interested in or tormented by religion. Traces of this are everywhere found in Tennyson. " What am I ? Whence have I come ? Whither am I going ? What authority have I for any faith ? What has God to do with me, or I with God ? What are my duties to man, and what is their foundation ? " These were the kind of questions which stirred in England, like leaven in meal. Excitement then in politics, in social ques- tions, in religious questions, was rife in this country when Tennyson and Browning began to write. Their youth was stirred by a series of national impulses. This was the atmosphere in which they wrote their iirst poems ; and their after-poems were filled with it. Thus first poetry again began, like Pygmalion's marble, to move and speak, stepped down from its pedestal and took its share in the life of men and women. The blood grew warm and quick within its veins. And now the question is : Of what kind will the first poems be — or, rather, of what kind were Tennyson's — under these conditions ? They will not be directly written on the special national excitements. The poet is kindled by these excitements, but he does not write on them. The stirring in his heart which he receives from the nation he applies to his own subjects, those which are personal to him. The primary emotion is national, the secondary emotions are personal, but it is on the secondary that he writes. Even when he makes a poem upon that which was affecting all thoughtful men in the nation — on the religious problem — the poem is not The Poems of 1830 61 written to express the national feeling, but to express his own. And this is the case in that quasi-religious poem in the volume of 1830, which Tennyson calls the Confessions of a Sensitive Mind, and which ends O weary life ! O weary death ! O spirit and heart made desolate ! O damned vacillating state ! Keats could not, for one moment, have got into the condition in which this conclusion and the poem which precedes it were possible. When Tennyson in 1830 wrote his sonnet to J. M. K., in excitement about the work this friend of his was to do as a preacher among mankind ; when he said that his friend would be a " soldier-priest, no sabbath drawler of old saws," but spurred at heart with fieriest energy to embattell and to wall about his cause With ironed-worded proof, hating to hark The humming of the drowsy pulpit-drone Half God's good sabbath, while the worn-out clerk Brow-beats his desk below, he was moved by the emotion of the religious revival which had begun in England. Such an emotion could not have been felt by Keats. Had Keats, indeed, lived longer it would have been different, for he began before he died to step out of his isolation in beauty and to wish to be a soldier of humanity ; and he would have been profoundly moved by the new impulses in English life. 62 Tennyson Nor would it have been possible for Keats, in his time, to write the English War Songs, or the National Song at the end of the volume of 1830, which are filled with a young man's patriotic pride, and with a contempt of the French people. They are not fine things, but they illustrate my contention — that the poets had again taken interest in the present ; that the nation, being new-born into fresh emotion, was making a new ground for poetry. That is one thing to say. Another is that the poet will not altogether get rid of the condition of things in which he has lived since he was a boy. He will write a number of poems in his first books which will be of the same class as those written by the men and women of the exhausted time, pretty, graceful, powerless poems, without any forward outlook. And of these a good deal of this first volume of Tennyson's is made up. The first poem, entitled Claribel, is of this quality. So are most of the poems addressed to various imagined women — such as Lilian, Madeline, Adeline. So also are the Songs, which do not even vaguely prophesy the excellence Ten- nyson afterwards reached in this kind of poetry. It is true, the refined choice of words in these poems, their over-wrought phrasing, are better than the conventional grace and slippered wording of the contemporary verse ; but they are still of that mould into which Mrs. Hemans and the rest cast their poetry. The poet, even though he is to become a leader of fresh song, is then like one of those figures we see in the mediasval pictures of the Resurrection at the Last Judgment, half risen from the The Poems of 1830 63 earth, their heads and arms uplifted to the new light of life, their legs still clasped by the encumbering earth. This was exactly the case with Tennyson. He is partly sunk in the old clay, but he is partly risen. There are poems in this book of 1830 in which the fresh utter- ance of a new Maker of song is ringing clear, in which he has got free altogether of the past. And one of the earliest things he wrote (" written very early in life " is his own addition to the title) is one of these prophetic things. This is the Ode to Memory. We hear in it faint echoes of Coleridge, or of Milton ; but we also hear a clear, original, and dominant note of his own, belonging to none ; self-felt, self-invented ; thought and emotion unknown before ; music and phrasing new. No wonder, having done this as a boy, he felt himself a man apart, with the laurel of Apollo within his reach. When we hear a verse like this : Listening the lordly music flowing from The illimitable years,* we know that he who wrote it has begun work which has the power to continue. And when we read this description of a natural land- scape, we know that we are listening to one who will reveal to us Nature under a new light, and new worlds of Nature. He is still speaking to Memory : * This is also used in Timbuctoo. 64 Tennyson Thou wert not nursed by the waterfall Which ever sounds and shines A pillar of white light upon the wall Of purple cliffs, aloof descried : Come from the woods that belt the gray hillside, The seven elms, the poplars four. That stand beside my father's door, And chiefly from the brook that loves To purl o'er matted cress and ribbed sand. Or dimple in the dark of rushy coves. Drawing into his narrow earthen urn. In every elbow and turn. The filter'd tribute of the rough woodland, O ! hither lead thy feet ! Pour round mine ears the livelong bleat Of the thick fleeced sheep from wattled folds, Upon the ridgM wolds. The metrical movement is untrained, there is not sufficient rejection of the superfluous ; but there is the original thing. The sight of Nature and its expression owe something to Wordsworth and Keats. But beyond the echoes there is the sounding of a new horn on Apollo's hill. Nor does this stand alone. There are at least twelve poems in this first book which are like the gates into a fresh world, and better work at every point than this Ode to Memory. Among these are Mariana, Rec- ollections of the Arabian Nights, The Poet, The Dying Swan, Love and Death, Oriana, The Sleeping Beauty, The Sea Fairies. In these Tennyson's picture-poetry begins in a num- ber of elaborate studies of Nature, with one figure in them to give them human interest ; and these studies The Poems of 1830 65 are of two kinds. Some are carried through a poem of many verses, like Mariana, where the one landscape is described at various times of day and night, where birds and animals correspondent to the emotion are intro- duced, and where all are led up to one lonely figure. Others are in short single verses — a whole landscape set in the frame of a quatrain — like those composed in 1833 for The Palace of Art. This was, on both its sides, a new method. The previous poets had not invented it. Here is a passage from Mariana of pure landscape. I quote from the volume of 1830 : About a stone-cast from the wall, A sluice with blacken'd waters slept, And o'er it many, round and small, The cluster'd marish-mosses crept. Hard by a poplar shook alway, All silver-green with gnarled bark ; For leagues no other tree did dark The level waste, the rounding gray. The last two lines illustrate his homelike love for a land of wide horizons and low skies, fringed with hum- ble hills, such as he saw continually in the fen country ; such as he pencils out in one rapid sketch in Oriana, where in only two lines we see and hear the wintry world with equal vividness — When the long dun wolds are ribb'd with snow, And loud the Norland whirlwinds blow. There is already the full-mouthed vowel-music of Ten- nyson ; one of the characteristics of his careful art in 66 Tennyson w ords, of which no one before, except Milton, was so skilled, so conscious, or so continuous a master. A whole essay might be written on this part of his technic art ; and it is worth a reader's while, for once at least, to collect together these great vowel-passages from his poems. The Recollections of the Arabian Nights is another of these landscape poems. Every verse is a picture of a new reach of the river Tigris ; the sound of every word is studied in them, so that the words in their varied sound should do the same office for the poetry that the various tones of colour do for a painting. And to ac- complish this the better, he now invented, but far too much and with a luxuriance which he afterwards pruned away, a number of double adjectives, chosen as much for their sound as for their images. All the poems about women are filled with these — sudden-curved, golden-netted, forward-flowing, silver-chiming, fountain- fragrant, shadow-chequered, hollow-vaulted, sable-sheeny — and very many more : a dangerous trick to gain, and one from which it is difficult to escape. Tennyson loved these double-shotted words, but he had power enough afterwards to bring their use into moderation. There is another poem, The Sea Fairies, not much in itself, but also prophetic of a new world in poetry. The first three lines in the song of the Sirens is the first true note of the singing quality, both in metre and in unity of theme, which afterwards made the songs of Tennyson so distinguished. The other songs in this The Poems of 1830 67 book might have been written by half a dozen other men — they belong to the merely graceful — but this is his own, and its quality is altogether of a new kind. It begins : Whither away, whither away, whither away ? Fly no more : Whither away with the swinging sail ? whither away with the oar ? Whither away from the high green field and the happy blossoming shore ? This is the easy movement of a metrist's wing in an early flight, singing all the time. I say an early flight, for his metrical movement, as most of the poems in this book declare, was at this time broken, halting, and un- musical. Coleridge said, when he read these poems, that Tennyson had " begun to write verses without very well understanding what metre is " ; and indeed he ar- rived at the excellence he did attain in metre more by study than by natural gift. But the capability of fine artistic song is as clearly shadowed forth in The Sea Fairies, as the full sunlight is by the colours of the dawn. What it was to become, after some years of training, any one may read in the song in The Lvtos- Eaters, of which this poem is, as it were, the first sketch. Moreover, there is another characteristic of Tenny- son's future poetry in The Sea Fairies. It is the first of the small classical studies in which he excelled, and it is built on the same foundation as the rest of them. When he takes a classical subject he builds it up with one underlying thought which, running through the whole of 68 Tennyson the poem, gives it unity. He chooses a simple thought, common to all mankind ; felt by the ancients, but to which he gives continual touches and variations which grow out of modern life, and out of his own soul. This is the case with Ulysses, CEnone, Tithonus, and the rest. But the unity and simplicity of the thought, its mingled ancient and modern air, and its careful inweaving into the whole body of the story, make these classical things of his unique. No one has ever done them in the same fashion, and the fashion is extraordinarily interesting. In The Sea Fairies the thought is the weariness of the ceaseless labour of the world. " Why toil so much for so little ? Take the joy of rest and love. Sleep, before the great sleep." We shall see how this excessively simple thought is splendidly wrought out in The Lotos- Eaters. It is enough now to say that this is the first of these classical poems, and, so far as method is con- cerned, it is similar to them all. This, then, is also a new thing. Once more, on this poem, we have in it and The Mystic the first clear sound of the blank verse of Tenny- son. These lines from The Mystic belong to him : He, often lying broad awake, and yet Remaining in the body, and apart In intellect and power and will, hath heard Time flowing in the middle of the night, And all things creeping to a day of doom. Still more prophetic of a new blank verse are the lines at the beginning of The Sea Fairies : The Poems of 1830 69 Slow sail'd the weary mariners and saw. Between the green brink and the running foam, White limbs unrobed in a crystal air, Sweet faces, rounded arms, and bosoms prest To little harps of gold ; and, while they mused, Whispering to each other half in fear. Shrill music reach'd them on the middle sea. No one, with an ear, can mistake the novelty of the verse. It is plainly done by one who had read Milton, but it is not Milton's way ; it is Tennyson's own ; and it is charming to hear the first note of a music which has delighted us so long in two lines like these : Slow sailed the weary mariners, and saw Between the green brink and the running foam. These, then, are the new things in the poems of 1830. It remains to speak of his conception of what a poet was, and of himself as poet. I have said that Tennyson was conscious all his life of being set apart as a prophet, and of the duties which he owed to humanity. His life, in his own mind, was weighted with a sense of these duties. He would have quoted for himself that noble passage in which Milton pictures himself and realises what sort of character the lofty poet must possess. He would have felt with that equally noble passage in The Prelude, where Wordsworth describes himself as consecrated to his work by Nature and by God. And it marks that change in the temper of England of which I wrote at the beginning, that Tennyson could not conceive, like Keats, of his work as done for beauty's sake alone, but also for the sake of 70 Tennyson humankind. The new earnestness and excitement of the world compelled him to conceive of his work with the same intensity as Wordsworth when, writing under the enrapturing and fresh enthusiasm of humanity and buoyant with youthful vigour, he came at first to Gras- mere. Wordsworth paints his soul, its outlook and its energy, in undying lines at the end of The Recluse ; and the comparison of these (which I commend to my read- ers) with Tennyson's verses on The Poet is full of de- lightful interest. In that poem, Tennyson lays down, and out of his own inward experience, what he conceived himself to be, and how he conceived his work ; and he never abandoned, betrayed, or enfeebled his conception. It is a remarkable utterance for so young a man, weighty with that steadiness of temper which, if it diminished spontaneity in his art, yet gave it a lasting power. The poet in a golden clime was bom, With golden stars above ; Dower'd with the hate of hate, the scorn of scorn, The love of love. That is the beginning, and the first needs of the poet's nature could scarcely be better expressed. Then he speaks of the clear insight into God and man which is the best gift of the poet. He saw thro' life and death, thro' good and ill, He saw thro' his own soul. The marvel of the everlasting will, An open scroll. Before him lay. The Poems of 1830 71 Then his thoughts, blown like arrow-seeds over the whole world with melodies and light, take root, and be- come flowers in the hearts of men, till high desires are born, and truth is multiplied on truth. And thro' the wreaths of floating dark upcurled, Rare sunrise flow'd. And in that sunrise. Freedom clothed in wisdom came upon Man, and shook his spirit, and ruined anarchies and oppressions. This was Tennyson's youthful con- ception of his work, and we should never forget it when we read his poetry, though we are tempted sometimes to think that he forgot this last part of it himself. I quote the final verses, and from the book of 1830. Their note is new. Their power, in contrast with the light verse that was contemporary with them, is the revelation of a poetic resurrection : And Freedom rear'd in that august sunrise Her beautiful, bold brow, When rites and forms before his burning eyes Melted like snow. There was no blood upon her maiden robes Sunn'd by those orient skies ; But round about the circles of the globes Of her keen eyes * And in the bordure of her robe was writ Wisdom — a name to shake Hoar anarchies, as with a thunder-fit. And when she spake, * Recast in 1842. And in her raiment's hem was traced in flame Wisdom, a name to shake All evil dreams of power — a sacred name. 72 Tennyson Her words did gather thunder as they ran, And as the lightning to the thunder Which follows it, riving the spirit of man. Making earth wonder. So was their meaning to her words. No sword Of wrath her right arm hurl'd, But one poor poet's scroll, and with his word She shook the world. CHAPTER II THE POEMS OF 1 833 THREE years after the volume of 1830, Tennyson published the little book of 1833, containing thirty new poems. In this second volume he wrought still further at the new veins he had struck, and turned their ore into finer shapes. But he not only developed work he had already begun ; he found fresh and different veins of poetry, opened these also, and made out of their gold new creations full of the spirit of youth hastening to a greater excellence. Evolution then of the subjects discovered in 1830 — creation of new subjects in 1833 — these are the matter of this chapter. But first, it is well to mark how the artist, as artist, grows. He cannot cease inventing ; new things, new forms spring up under his hand ; ever uncontent be- cause the unattainable of Beauty lures him on. " If thou givest me," cries Beauty in his heart, " a thousand shapes, there are yet a million more which thou mayest invent for me, and yet I shall not be exhausted." He who feels that allurement and hears that cry has the art- 73 74 Tennyson ist's temper ; he who can embody what he feels and hears, in ever varying forms, till old age touch him with inability, is the artist. He moves " from well to better, daily self-surpast," till he has no more power. We know when his power is lessening, for then he begins to repeat himself. We know that it still exists, however feebly, when, in the midst of repetitions, new things now and then appear. And it is one of the happy things in Tennyson's career, that even till he was past eighty years of age, this creativeness — that is, this power of being inflamed with the love of Beauty and animated by her into crea- tion — did not altogether die. In the very last volume he published there appeared a poem called The Gleam, which, if it was written shortly before the book was is- sued, was a new and beautiful blossom on his ancient tree. Those who, walking in an English park, have come upon an oak, broken off short by age or storm and hollow within, but whose rugged gnarls send forth leaves as delicate as those of its childhood, must have often thought, " There is the image of the great artist in his old age, of the great musician, the great painter, the great poet " ; and though Tennyson does not stand among the very mightiest, yet he had this singular and noble power of fresh creation in old age. We are sure to find this creativeness in his youth. It appeared, as we have seen, in 1830, and I have discussed some forms of it in the previous chapter. Two forms of it, however, I omitted — one, the drawing of " charac- The Poems of 1833 75 ters " ; the other, the drawing of Nature. Both of these were more fully worked out in the volume of 1833. Both are new in manner, and interesting beyond them- selves. The types of character were drawn, each apart, like solitary statues. As a young man, he chose women on whom to try his prentice hand, and we have a series of these pictures, with fanciful names written underneath them. They are lifeless as women, lay figures with elaborate dresses ; word-painted, nothing but words. There are no surprises in these characters, nothing inex- plicable, nothing unexpected, nothing veiled, no pro- found simplicity, nothing which recalls a woman. They are, above all, logically worked out ; one verse opens into another in an intellectual order. We can predict what is coming — as if their subjects moved in accord- ance to law. It was like a young man to try this, but it was a pity he did not prefer to draw his college com- panions, for the one man's character that he does out- line is a fairly-painted type. Here are two verses of it : Most delicately hour by hour He canvass'd human mysteries ; And trod on silk, as if the winds Blew his own praises in his eyes, And stood aloof from other minds In impotence of fancied power. With lips depress'd as he were meek, Himself unto himself he sold ; Upon himself himself did feed : Quiet, dispassionate and cold. 76 Tennyson And other than his form of creed. With chisell'd features clear and sleek. But even that is more like an exercise in the descrip- tion of a type than like the picture of a living man. Character is shown by clashing with character. It may " form itself in silence," but it is ignorant of itself till it can speak to others and answer their speech. Hence the Maker, who is bound to paint men and women, almost always paints them in movement with or against one another. Tennyson did that fairly afterwards, but never superbly. The effort to make a type was always too much with him. The men and women in the Idylls of the King want life. The personal edges and angles have been worn away in order to establish the type. Enid, Tristram, Vivien, Arthur, even Lancelot who is the most living, are often like those photographs which are made by photographing the faces of a series of politicians or philosophers or artists one on the top of another. We get the general type — or they say we get it — but we do not get a man. The men and women who are most actual in Tennyson's poetry are those whom he printed out of every-day life, and in the sphere of the common affections and troubles of mankind — in stories like Enoch Arden, in country idylls like The Gardener's Daughter, Dora, The Brook ; in the Lincoln- shire dialect poems, which bring before us the most living persons in his books. Nevertheless, the attempt Tennyson made at this time to draw separate characters is in harmony with the age The Poems of 1833 11 in which he began to write. Character-making was once a favourite species of poetry, but it had not been done well since the time of Pope. None of the greater poets from Wordsworth to Keats took up this special form of art. But Tennyson, and with greater power Browning, deliberately insulated and painted a number of characters, and of generalised types of character, as if a certain driving force from without, a tendency of popular thought, urged them to make much of the indi- vidual, as if society had concluded that it was to find its betterment in the support of strong individualities. And indeed this was the case in England in 1833. As great as the tendency is at present to collectivism, so great was the tendency then to individualism. It grew steadily in politics, even in art and religion, for thirty years, and then it began to abate. Large crowds of men laid all their lives in the hands of great leaders of thought ; and thus, while they maintained the necessity for strong individualities, lessened individualism by collecting in mass under the banner of one man ; so curiously and so certainly do extremes cut their own throats. The individual, the powerful character, is everything, said Carlyle, and said it for more than forty years. This was partly a protest against the past dul- ness of society, it was still more the protest of the fear of the cultivated man that in the coming democracy all men would be levelled and a dull monotony rule su- preme. Every valley, they cried, will be exalted and every mountain and hill brought low ; there will be no 78 Tennyson varied scenery in humanity. We hear that dread ex- pressed by Tennyson in Locksley Hall : Knowledge comes, but wisdom lingers, and I linger on the shore And the individual withers, and the world is more and more. The verses which follow, the hero's desire to break all links of habit, to escape to summer isles, " where the passions, cramped no longer, shall have scope and breathing space"; where men shall be free to make themselves, continue the same thought. He had then in 1842, when Locksley Hall was published, realised fully the desire for individualism which was then rife in Eng- land. It was this force which pressed him in 1830 and 1833 into the writing of characters. Secondly, I have drawn attention to the new way of painting Nature which Tennyson developed, and to the new world of Nature to which he introduced us. He composed his Nature into pictures, a thing not done by Byron, Shelley, or Keats, or at least not so deliberately, not so consciously. This picture-composing of Nature is carried to much greater excellence in the volume of 1833. I might contrast Mariana in the South, a poem of 1833, with Mariana of 1830, but it would not prove my point — that his power of nature-painting had in- creased. It suggests, however, another point with regard to Tennyson's natural description. Mariana in the South is not so good as its predecessor ; and I believe that the reason of its comparative failure is that the scene is laid in the South, and Tennyson was so English, The Poems of 1833 79 and so much the child of long habit, that when he got outside of this country, even outside of the landscape which surrounded him year after year, he did not choose so happily as in England the right thing to say in order to give the sentiment of the landscape. This is, how- ever, subject to exception. What I say is true concern- ing his foreign landscapes, whenever he is working direct from Nature, or composing out of things he has seen. It is not true when he is deliberately inventing his land- scape out of his own head, and with reference to his subject — as he is in CEnone or The Lotos-Eaters. There he paints the inward vision ; and he does it with noble clearness. But we understand that the landscape is imagined, that it has never been seen. With this exception, it is only the accustomed land- scape of his own land, studied from the life, that he sees clearly and describes well ; and this belongs to his char- acter as well as to his art. He was a homelike person, and it was not till Nature had for many years slowly " crept into the study of his imagination " that he could paint her with the affectionate finish he desired. Rapid impressions received in travel he could not, like Byron or Shelley, record with excellence. The poem called The Daisy, in which he attempts this work, is, with the exception of one verse, a failure. But that which had endeared itself to him for years, which amid a thousand varieties of aspect had unity of sentiment, the landscape of Lincolnshire, the fens and the meres and sea ; the landscape of Surrey, Kent, Hampshire, and the Isle of 8o Tennyson Wight— of the chalk and the sandstone— this he did to perfection. In The Palace of Art,the. landscapes are on the tapestry, and of course are themselves pictures. All the more then they illustrate his way of looking at Nature — his turn for composing her like a painter. Each landscape is done in four lines, and with the exception of two, they might all be in Lincolnshire. I quote from the poem as altered in 1842 : One seem'd all dark and red — a tract of sand, And some one pacing there alone, Who paced for ever in a glimmering land, Lit with a low large moon. The second is not Lincolnshire : One show'd an iron coast and angry waves. You seem'd to hear them climb and fall. And roar rock-thwarted under bellowing caves. Beneath the windy wall. That seems to be a piece of the coast of Yorkshire, outside of his own country. It is good, but if he had belonged to the Yorkshire coast, and loved it like the glimmering lands of Lincoln with the low-hung moon, the second line would have been better done. The next is full Lincolnshire, and might be a motto for the art of De Wint : And one, a full fed river winding slow By herds upon an endless plain, The ragged rims of thunder brooding low. With shadow-streaks of rain. The next is from the South. " Hoary in the wind " is the vision of the gray underside of the olive-leaf tossed The Poems of 1833 81 upwards over a whole hillside by the gust into the sunlight. And one, the reapers at their sultry toil. In front they bound the sheaves. Behind Were realms of upland, prodigal in oil. And hoary to the wind. The whole is, however, not clear ; he does not see it as vividly as the rest, and there is little sentiment in it. But the next — could it be better ? And how drenched it is in the sentiment of England ! And one, an English home — gray twilight pour'd On dewy pastures, dewy trees. Softer than sleep — all things in order stored, A haunt of ancient Peace. This is Tennyson in love with his subject, and the quality of the poetry rises with his love. Moreover, it is delightful to see him stretch out his hand to Virgil, who was as fond of his country as Tennyson of England — " Softer than sleep." Again, we stand on the long shallow sands of the sea-coast near his early home, and there is no better, briefer, yet more finished picture in all his work : A still salt pool, lock'd in with bars of sand. Left on the shore ; that hears all night Their plunging seas draw backward from the land Their moon-led waters white. These are properly pictures, but the immense improve- ment in the description of Nature which took place be- tween 1830 and 1833 is more fully seen in poems where Nature and human affections are woven together, as in 6 82 Tennyson The May Queen, and better still in The Miller's Daughter, both of this year. The girl's cottage is on the hillside, above the valley and the meadowy stream. The land is full of flowers and grass. The cowslip and the crowfoot are all over the hill, the honeysuckle is round the porch, the faint sweet cuckoo-flowers grow beside the meadow trenches ; " And the wild marsh-marigold shines like fire in swamps and hollows gray." Where in the world can we place this except in England — half in Lincoln, half in Kent? Fond as he was of the common flowers, he was even fonder of the birds. The red cock crows, in this poem, from the farm upon the hill : The building rook '11 caw from the windy tall elm-tree, And the tufted plover pipe along the fallow lea, And the swallow 'ill come again with summer o'er the wave. Every line is a picture in a new style of art, something which had not been done before in this fashion and finish ; no, not even by Wordsworth whose love of flowers and birds is less pictorial, but more instinct with the life of the thing he describes. Nor could Wordsworth, who is the mountain poet, have made us feel the land- scape of the lower English lands as Tennyson does — with our pity for the dying girl woven through it all — in these four lines, so clear and fine : When the flowers come again, mother, beneath the waning light. You '11 never see me more in the long gray fields at night ; When from the dry dark wold the summer airs blow cool. On the oat-grass and the sword-grass, and the bulrush in the pool. The Poems of 1833 83 Still more of England and of the scenery of the chalk-lands, which whosoever loves, loves well, is all the landscape in The Millers Daughter. In this poem, as in the last, there is no special picture made of the land- scape, for the human interest is first. But we might, culling from verse to verse our indications, paint the whole of the country-side round the mill, so careful is Tennyson in his drawing, so deeply has the scene sunk into his imagination. It is owing to this full digestion, in contemplation, of the landscape, that the human fig- ures — the miller, the lover, the maiden — are so much felt, as we read, to be at union with the natural world round them, even to be partly made into what they are by dwelling with it for so long. Tennyson, who himself, with regard to the Nature he described, was in part a product of that Nature, knew how to do this artistic thing, and it gives an extraordinary unity to a great number of his poems. Had he not absorbed his scenery in this fashion, he could not have had the capacity, not only to see the minuter things, as the colour of ash-buds in March, a capacity which was not fully developed till ten years after this volume, but to give, in a line or two, the very image of the whole country its essential marks : The white chalk-quarry from the hill Gleam'd to the flying moon by fits — On the chalk-hill the bearded grass Is dry and dewless. Let us go. Night and day, the whole country lies before us. This 84 Tennyson is one of the great art-powers, the power of choosing out of a multitude of impressions that single thing which will awaken all the rest of the landscape, with its sentiment, before the eyes. It is partly natural gift, but it is also the result of long indrinking of the special landscape, and years of the special landscape, and years of inward contemplation of it. And in this matter of living with Nature in one place for years, and out of the incessant observation of love of actually creating in poetry a portion of England, with its birds and flowers, its skies, woodland, meadows, and streams, and so vividly and truly that every touch tells ; every adjective, the sound of the words, the pauses in the line, enhancing the life of the whole description — for this reproduction of a whole land and of the final impression made by it after many years upon the soul, and for the power of making us feel the land as the poet felt it — we must get back, if we would find a comparison, to Wordsworth. Wordsworth did for the Lake country what Tennyson did for southern England and the Fenland. But Words- worth did not do this part of his work with as much specialised power as Tennyson. This is the first thing to say of his landscape. The second concerns his invented landscape, but this will be more fitly treated of in the chapter on the Classical poems. Meanwhile, Tennyson began two new kinds of poetry in this book of 1833. The first was the treatment of moral questions under the symbolism of poetry. Of The Poems of 1833 85 this symbolic poetry he afterwards produced a few ex- amples. The Vision of Sin, made in 1842, is one. There is a dream in In Memoriam which may be said to be another example. Within the main allegory of the Idylls of the King there are other examples to be found. The dream in Sea Dreams is another. Of these there are not many, for this species of poetry, which embodies a moral problem in a highly ornamented vision, is as exceedingly difficult to do well, as it is exceedingly easy to do badly. When Tennyson did it, he gave all his powers to it, and was not content till he had wrought it, by change after change, into the most careful and skilful finish. There is only one poem in this volume of 1833 which is in this manner. It is The Palace of Art, and it stands out clear — a new thing, a fresh effort. As we read it in the volume of 1833, it has many weak lines. So far as composition goes, it is often all awry. Often we say to ourselves, "Would this were better." But as we read it in the volume of 1842, when it had received eight years of recasting and polishing, it is one of the most perfect of Tennyson's poems. To compare the first draft of this poem with the second, or to com- pare the first draft of CEnone with the second, is not only to receive a useful lesson in the art of poetry — it is also to understand, far better than by any analysis of his life, a great part of Tennyson's character ; his impatience for perfection, his steadiness in pursuit of it, his power of taking pains, the long intellectual consideration he gave to matters which originated in the emotions, his 86 Tennyson love of balancing this and that form of his thought against one another, and when the balancing was done, the unchangeableness of his acceptance of one form, and of his rejection of another ; and finally, correlative with these qualities, his want of impulse and rush in song, as in life — English, not Celtic at all. These quali- ties appear in his elaborate recasts of his poems, and when we compare the recasts with their originals, the man, as well as the artist, seems to grow before us into actual being. But, returning to the poem, it marks the first rising in his mind of thought on the graver questions of life ; not thought on the world around him, or on any question as it affects humanity, but on a question concerning himself and his duty as an artist. " Shall I love art and beauty which I shape in art for the sake of art alone, beauty for beauty only ; knowledge only for the sake of the beauty it brings to me ? Shall I live, apart from the world of men, and work with no desire to help, exalt, or console the blind and ugly herd of men ? " This is a question that we ask in the present day, and some answer, " Yes, beauty only, beauty for it% own sake — art without any aim of love in it — art in isolation from mankind ! " And they retire to a sheltered solitude and sing their song alone, refusing to hear, behind their hushed tapestries, the cry of human sorrow for human love. What is their fate ? They lose love, for love is only gained by loving ; and they lose the beauty they desired to grasp, for beauty is the child of love. Outside the power of loving man, no beauty The Poems of 1833 87 lasts. And finally, having none to love, and therefore nothing to take them out of themselves, they are wholly thrown on themselves. Their only companion is their self, and this is absolute horror and dismay. This, then, was his subject, and he puts it in the In- troduction. I write, he says, a sort of allegory of a soul that loved beauty only, and good and knowledge only for their beauty, and who shut out Love : And he that shuts out Love, in turn shall be Shut out from Love, and on her threshold lie Howling in outer darkness. It is a good subject for an essay or a sermon, but when an artist seizes it as the subject of a poem it must first be filled with human passion ; and secondly it must be ornamented with lovely images. Passion is given to it by Tennyson by making the soul a person who goes through pride to dreadful pain, and through pain into repentance. Beauty is given to it by the description of the palace which embodies all the various arts and wis- dom of the world in imaginative symbolism. And surely no more superb and lovely house was ever built by the wit of man. Take two verses out of many :* Four courts I made — east, west, and south and north, In each a squared lawn, wherefrom The golden gorge of dragons spouted forth A flood of fountain-foam. * I have quoted the passages in this poem from the revised version of 1842. No poem of Tennyson's underwent more revision. 88 Tennyson And round the cool green courts there ran a row Of cloisters, branch'd like mighty woods, Echoing all night to that sonorous flow Of spouted fountain-floods. The vowels roll and ring, and the ornament is lovely — ornament which Tennyson takes care to introduce be- tween his successive representations of the state of the soul. The whole palace is dedicated to loveliness. The rooms are filled with the great painters' art ; all fair landscape is there, and pictures of great romance from Christian history, from Arabia, India, Greece, and Rome ; portraits of the great poets ; and on the floors, in choicely planned mosaic, is wrought the human tale of the wide world's history ; while all philosophy and knowledge — in the chiming bells, and in melodies and in the lights that lit the domes — were heard and real- ised. There lived the soul alone unto herself. And ' ' while the world runs round and round, " I said, " Reign thou apart, a quiet king — " She took her throne ; She sat betwixt the shining Oriels, To sing her songs alone. Communing with herself : ' ' All these are mine. And let the world have peace or wars, 'T is one to me." ' ' I take possession of man's mind and deed, I care not what the sects may brawl. I sit as God, holding no form of creed. But contemplating all." The Poems of 1833 89 Full oft the riddle of the painful earth Flash'd thro' her as she sat alone. Yet not the less held she her solemn mirth, And intellectual throne. Then comes the punishment, full of human interest, and wrought with an emotion which lifts it above the level of mere symbolism. Despair, confusion of mind, fear and hatred of solitude, self-scorn, terrible silence, hatred of life and death, entombment in fire within, fell on her. At last she cried : ' ' What is it that will take away my sin And save me lest I die ? " And out of the repentant cry came escape from the dread comradeship of her self. " I will return to humil- ity and to love, to lowly life with men and women. ' Make me a cottage, in the vale,' she said, ' Where I may mourn and pray ; ' for ' love is of the valley,' and when love is learned I will return to my palace ; for when I love, and return with others there, bringing all I love with me to enjoy with me — the beauty which turned to corruption when I was alone will live again in glory." This is Tennyson's confession of the duties of his art, and of the law of its practice ; and it is characteristic of this conclusion that now for the first time he begins that poetry of common human life, of the daily love of child and lover and wife and father and mother, of the ordi- nary sorrows and joys of men and women, which he go Tennyson wove all his life long with so much sweetness, tender- ness, and power, in homespun thread and colour, that there is no class, of whatever rank and knowledge, who will not take pleasure in it for all time, who will not love him for it. What Wordsworth had done for the begin- ning of this century, Tennyson has done for the midst of it. He brought us into touch with the general human heart in the midst of common life. Shelley, Keats, and Byron had not done this, nor Southey, Coleridge, or Scott. Since the waters of the Lyrical Ballads had streamed into the heart of man, this simple, fruitful sub- ject had been neglected by other poets than Words- worth ; this subject which lies among the roots of the tree of all the arts, and which, when other subjects of a more grand or fantastic kind are exhausted, sends its ever youthful life into the tree, and renews the arts. Its essence, pure and faithful love, is eternal in the human heart, and beyond it, in all spirits, and in God Himself. It takes in every true sorrow and true joy. It is univer- sal, and yet its forms are infinite. It is everywhere, like the grass that we love so well, and of which we never weary. All men, women, and children feel and under- stand it. It varies from the lowest note of the common- place to the highest note of imaginative passion, and the artist can choose whatever note he pleases to strike. There are many other subjects for the poet ; but if he wish to initiate a new world of song, this is one of the subjects to which he must devote a part of his work ; and we shall find, when we are out of this transition The Poems of 1833 91 period of poetry in which we live at present and are fully wearied with its fantasies of Nature and passion and words, that the poet who will recreate our song will take up again the common love and life of men. He will drink of the wayside fountains of humanity. It was thus now with Tennyson. He began this vein with The May Queen, to which the galloping verse has sometimes given an air of sentimentalism. The same things would have made a different impression had the verse been shorter in line, and a little statelier in form. But it is sweet and gracious enough, and the mother, the poor pretty child and Robin her lover are our friends. He began it also with The Miller's Daughter, a simple story of true sweethearting and married love ; but raised by the loveliness of the scenery which is inwoven with charm and grace into the tale, and by the simplicity of the expression, into a steady and grave emotion, worthy of a love built to last for life betwixt a man and woman. This was the sort of love for which Tennyson cared, for which Byron and Shelley did not care, which was not in the world where Keats lived at all — but which was in Wordsworth's world, and which, after all our excursions into phases of passion, is not only the deepest and high- est of the affections, but the father and mother of all the other loves of earth. It was first in Tennyson's mind, but it had many companions. Love of many kinds, joy and sorrow of many kinds, as they were felt by the com- mon human heart, not only by the great, but by the lowly upon earth, were now his interest, and many and 92 Tennyson lovely were the poems he dedicated to them. Who is likely to forget Dora, The Gardener's Daughter, Sea Dreams, The Brook, Enoch Arden, and a host of others ? This is the democratic element in Tennyson. It is, in all its phases, the democracy of the artist. CHAPTER III THE POEMS OF 1 842 I DO not think that since the time of Shakspere there have been in England any poets so close to the life of their own time as Tennyson and Browning ; no, not even Wordsworth. Other men, like Pope, have got as close, or even closer, to distinct phases of thought or classes of society, but Tennyson and Browning settled themselves down to paint as far as they could all classes and their interests. They did this in different ways, but they both had a more universal aim than their prede- cessors, and covered a much larger and more various extent of ground. Of course they had more opportu- nities, more means. The steam-road, with its rapid travelling, extended literature to the country and brought the country into contact with the towns. The poet in London or the poet in the Isle of Wight touched a great number of different types of men which would have remained unknown to him fifty years before. In the same way the manifold forms of natural scenery in England or abroad were much more easily brought to 93 94 Tennyson his knowledge. Moreover Tennyson and Browning were lucky in their time. Their present was full of as- piration, of ideals, of questioning, of excitement. They were like ships floating into a great sea-loch, on a brim- ming tide and with a favouring wind. Tennyson's interest in the humanity of his own day now grew continuously. I shall show in the next chap- ter how he could not help modernising the Greek and the romantic subjects of which he treated. Keats went away to Athens or Florence, and living in an alien age forgot his own time. Tennyson said to Ulysses or Arthur, " Come down from the ancient days, and live with me, here in England." And they came ; and did their best to wear the modern dress. When we turn from these Greek subjects, we find him altogether Eng- lish and modern. A series of poems entered into various phases of youthful love. The Gardener s Daughter painted with beauty and simplicity the upspringing of the fountain of love in a young artist's soul, and car- ried it on to marriage. And the love was set in a frame- work of soft and flower-haunted English scenery, every touch of which, in Tennyson's way, was woven into the feelings of the two young hearts. Moreover, though I think that the collecting of the story round two pictures is awkward, it enables Tennyson to throw over this tale of first love the glamour and tenderness of memory. The man who tells it has lost the wife of his youth, whose picture he shows to his friend. The loveliness of unselfish sorrow, which makes remembrance joyful in The Poems of 1842 95 regret, veils the story with the delicate vapour of spirit- ual love. At first reading, there is a want of closeness, of reality in the feeling described. But when we know that it is a mature man recalling what has been when she whom he loved of old has long since been in the heavenly life, we understand how the clear edges of passion melt into ideal mist ; and then we read the poem from the poet's point of view. The Talking Oak is another poem of youthful love. The lover to whom the tree speaks of his maiden and who tells the tree of her, is a motive which has been often used, but never with greater skill and charm. There is a youthful animation, and a happy chivalry in rivalry of praise between the lover and the tree, which are full of natural grace, that quality somewhat rare in Tennyson, who was frequently too academic, too careful in his work to attain it. In this poem, also, his in- weaving of Nature's heart with the heart of man is more than plain. The oak talks to the lover. Nay, the oak itself is in love with the maiden. His very sap is stirred by her kiss. He drops an acorn on her breast ; and the half-jealous lover knows that he need not be jealous. Above all, there is no poem more English in all the poems of Tennyson. We see . the park, the Chase that ■ Englishmen of all ranks love so well ; the roofs of the great house above the trees ; the wild woodland deep in fern, the deer, the mighty trees, the oak which has watched so many English generations, so much of Eng- lish history — bluff Harry who turned the monks adrift — 96 Tennyson the Roundhead humming his surly hymn — the modish beauties of the Court of Anne — the English girl of to- day who leaves her novel and piano to race singing through the park. This is Tennyson close down to his own land, vitally interested in modern life, and the thing and its method are new in English poetry. The same springtide of love is described in Locksley Hall and in the gay delightfulness of The Day-Dream, with its modern applications ; but in Locksley Hall we pass on into one of those graver phases of love which Tennyson now treated. The hero's love suffers a mean disillusion, and he is angry like a boy ; but in Love and Duty the matter is more serious. Two love one another, whom duty forbids to fulfil their love. Was the love fruitless, did it turn to dust ? Because passion was denied, were two lives ruined ? No, is the answer of Tennyson. Be- cause duty was lord over passion and drove their lives apart, love itself, honoured more in giving up than in taking an earthly joy contrary to righteousness, lasted in both hearts, unstained and lovely, and bettered both their lives. The man, emerging from himself, gained the higher love, and never knew The set gray life, and apathetic end. The woman knew, when the parting was over, that all Life needs for life is possible to will. And happiness came to her, and freedom, and the dis- tant light was pure. The Poems of 1842 97 There was a conviction in Tennyson's mind that the sanctity of the marriage tie was one of the eternal foun- dations of all true personal, social, and national life ; that no amount of passionate love excused its breakage. This is not the view of the artists in general, but it is the view which prevails in the English nation. And Tennyson felt and represented it all through his poetry. It is a sin against that, with all its excuses also stated, which, in his recast of the Arthurian story, overthrows the whole life-work of the king and brings about the last great battle and the death. It is to establish the true idea of marriage as he conceived it that The Princess was written ; and a number of other poems, enshrining his reverence for long-continued faithfulness through all the troubles of domestic life, and culminating in the honour he gave to the Crown, chiefly for this reason, make him, even more than Wordsworth, the poet of the sanctity of marriage. Love and Duty seems to be the first of these poems. Two things are, however, curious in this poem. One is the passionate meeting of the lovers. From Tennyson's steady point of view married faith which permitted what he relates is not faith at all. And if it was not marriage, but some other duty which stood in the way, then the intensity of the piece is overdone. That is the first curi- ous thing, and the second is the predominance of the man in the matter. It is he that feels the most ; it is he that directs the whole business of duty. It is he that expresses passion, or allows it to be expressed. It is gS Tennyson he alone who is strong, who alone resists ; and when both retire into steady life, he alone does work ; " he is most Godlike, being most a man," and he uses his self- conquest to improve the world ; but the woman tends her flowers, is sadly happy, dreams a Httle by day, dreams more at night, and does no human work at all. In The Princess, Tennyson expands another view, being somewhat forced into it by his subject. But, on the whole, this subordinate position of woman, or rather this instinctive dominance of the man, is a weakness, at least from our modern point of view, in his work. He never conceives womanhood quite clearly. The mas- culine is too strong in him for that, and its prepon- derance is the cause why few of his women have the weight, the worth, or the character some other poets give them. Wordsworth's picture of his sister, his short poem to his wife, his Affliction of Margaret* his High- * Compare the passion of motherhood as expressed in this mag- nificent poem with that of Psyche in The Princess in the lines be- ginning Ah me, my babe, my blossom, ah, my child. My one sweet child, whom I shall see no more. There is no comparison. Indeed, the motherhood in Wordsworth's The Complaint and in Her eyes are wild is closer, more intimate to the primal passion, than anything in Tennyson, save always the intense penetration of Rizpah. My baby, the bones that had suck'd me, the bones that had laughed and cried — Theirs ? O, no ! they are mine — not theirs — they had moved in my side. That is as great as Nature herself. The Poems of 1842 99 land Girl, any of his women, are of more reality than the women of Tennyson. It seems, and it is a fault in a poet, as if at the bottom of his mind, and in spite of his Princess, he tended to the view of woman which his angry boy expresses in Locksley Hall : Woman is the lesser man, and all thy passions, match'd with mine. Are as moonlight unto sunlight, and as water unto wine. This is, of course, continually modified. He is always trying to conceive women as higher than this, and he succeeds ; but a blind pull in his mind, growing out of his nature, appears to draw him back to this lower con- ception. He cannot get his women of equal worth with his men. One of the results of this is that there is no vital or supreme passion between the sexes expressed by Tennyson. There is always a certain element of conde- scension in the man, and where there is a shred of con- descension there is no supreme passion. The nearest he gets to it is in the expression of the longing for lost love, and this is expressed by the man rather than by the woman.* It is the man who utters in Maud that most sorrowful and lovely of all Tennyson's cries : * There are always exceptions to be found to general statements of this kind, and they are frequently strong exceptions. Elaine draws near to such an exception, and the song in The Princess — "Tears, idle tears," is sung by a girl, and she sings it in her own person. The lines : Dear as remember'd kisses after death, And sweet as those by hopeless fancy feign'd On lips that are for others ; are intimate with a passion elsewhere almost unknown in Tennyson, lOO Tennyson O that 'twere possible. After long grief and pain, • To find the arms of my true love Round me once again ! But of the longing for lost love there are two poems, one in this book, and one included in it a little later, which record the wild love-sorrow of men. One is a kind of ballad, Edward Gray, and the greater part of it at- tains power through its simplicity, but Tennyson was led away at the end, and the poem passes into weak- ness. Fancy and reflection come in when the passion is over, and we are left a little disenchanted. I wish the last three verses were expunged. The other is a poem of much greater force, fully conceived, and sounding its way through deeper waters than we often try to fathom in Tennyson. Its motive, while uncom- mon, is adequate to the emotion expressed. Here it is : Come not, when I am dead. To drop thy foolish tears upon my grave, To trample round my fallen head, And vex the unhappy dust thou wouldst not save. There let the wind sweep and the plover cry ; But thou, go by. Child, if it were thine error or thy crime, I care no longer, being all unblest ; Wed whom thou wilt, but I am sick of Time And I desire to rest. Pass on, weak heart, and leave me where I lie ; Go by, go by. Weariness of love after long anger of love, weariness of life from weariness of love, and, beneath both, unforget- The Poems of 1842 loi ful tenderness, were rarely better expressed. But, to close these notes on the love poems in this volume, it is somewhat strange, but illustrative of what I have said about the dominance of the man in Tennyson, that the poem of fullest regret for love drowned in death is written in memory of a man. Every one knows it ; it is a piece of perfect work, fully felt, and fully finished, simple and profound — and with what tine art Nature is inwoven with its passion ! Break, break, break, On thy cold gray stones, O Sea, And I would that my tongue could utter The thoughts that arise in me. There is no need to quote the rest : it lives in the memory of man. Along with these poems of love arose poems of mod- em life, half dramatic, half idyllic ; dramatic idylls — some of a serious, even stately simplicity, quite close to common human life, like Dora, which is a little master- piece ; others of a homespun humour mingled with im- aginative thought, like Audley Court and The Golden Year ; and others full of that honest University humour which characterises the talk of Englishmen when they are on a vacation tour, like Walking to the Mail and Edwin Morris. These are pure modernisms ; they also are new in English poetry ; they have opened a vein which many others may work at, and they have opened it in an excellent and varied way. The very similes Tennyson uses in them are in harmony with the charac- I02 Tennyson ter of the poems, similes drawn from every-day sounds and sights, and so vital with observation of common English life and things that they seem to illuminate the page with England. A body slight and round, and like a pear In growing, modest eyes, a hand, a foot Lessening in perfect cadence, and a skin As clean and white as privet when it flowers. James — you know him — old, but full Of force and choler, and firm upon his feet, And like an oaken stock in winter woods, O'erflourish'd by the hoary clematis. He laugh'd, and I, though sleepy, like a horse That hears the corn-bin open, prick'd my ears. Scattered through these poems, and in accordance with all I have said of Tennyson's incorporation of Nature and the heart of man, are lovely, true, and inti- mate descriptions of Nature in England, done with an art which never forgot itself, and which seemed some- times too elaborate in skill. Indeed, we should often feel this, were it not that the full product gives so com- plete a pleasure. The Gardener' s Daughter is alive with such descrip- tions ; and it would be worth while to read that of the entrance into the garden. Step by step, as we move on, the changing scene is painted. We walk through the landscape with Tennyson. This garden-passage begins : The Poems of 1842 103 We reach'd a meadow slanting to the north. When the last line strikes the ear, The twinkling laurel scatter'd silver lights, it is meant to paint the very thing by words ; but a far finer instance of this, where the line is so arranged in sound as to be itself what he describes, is towards the end of the poem : Or as once we met Unheedful tho', beneath a whispering rain Night slid down one long stream of sighing ivind. And in her bosom bore the baby, Sleep. Nor can I pass by that description of the Lincoln meadows, near the town, lush in thick grass and in broad waters, and deep in wind-washed trees — Not wholly in the busy world, nor quite Beyond it, blooms the garden that I love. News from the humming city comes to it In sound of funeral or of marriage bells ; And, sitting mufHed in dark leaves, you hear The windy clanging of the minster clock ; Although between it and the garden lies A league of grass, wash'd by a slow broad stream, That, stirr'd with languid pulses of the oar. Waves all its lazy lilies, and creeps on, Barge-laden, to three arches of a bridge Crown'd with the minster-towers. The fields between Are dewy-fresh, browsed by deep-udder'd kine. And all about the large lime feathers low, The lime a summer home of murmurous wings. I04 Tennyson The close of Audley Court is as near to truth : The town was hush'd beneath us : lower down The bay was oily-calm ; the harbour buoy, With one green sparkle ever and anon Dipt by itself, and we were glad at heart. That is evening, when the moon is high : here is- morning lifting herself in exultation : Then when the first low matin-chirp hath grown Full quire, and morning driv'n her plow of pearl,* Far furrowing into light the mounded rack. Beyond the fair green field and eastern lea. This has that classic note of Milton, but it is quite original. There are many touches of Nature as fine as this in Locksley Hall, but that poem has far more to do with man than with Nature. It is, however, set in land- scape which reflects the temper of the hero — sandy tracks on which the ocean thunders and the curlews cry — the sea-shore on one side, and the moorland on the other ; and at the last, the vapour blackening from the moor with the blast in its breast to fall on Locksley Hall. Every one knows this poem. Its form is good, its divisions clear. It passes from one division to another with ease and imagination. Every one knows the hero, with his hour of happy love, his rage of disillusion, his * Compare the lines in The Princess : Morn in the white wake of the morning star Came furrowing all the orient into gold. The Poems of 1842 105 hope at the end that the living present may excite him by its science, and give him back his youthful inspira- tion. I never thought that this blustering youth, " weak as is a breaking wave," whom Tennyson invented so well, and who is so true to a common type — a type he lowers much further in the hero of Maud — would find any inspiration in science or the march of commerce ; and the second Locksley Hall, where Tennyson draws the same personage after he had settled on his lees, proves that he got no good out of science or the British carrying trade. But how modern it all is ; how kindled Tennyson is by the time in which he was living, how alive to its wants, its strife, its faults, its good ! We are miles and miles away from the temper in which Keats or Shelley regarded their world. Three other poems in this volume may be called theo- logical, and grouped together : St. Simeon Stylites, The Two Voices, and The Vision of Sin. The first is a study of the type of the ascetic in its extreme. Neverthe- less, so ably, so robustly, and yet so delicately is it done that its spirit and its qualities belong to the whole range of ascetics, from Stylites down to the slightest subduer of the flesh. The conviction that all evil lies in matter and all good in its subjugation ; that the more the flesh is punished, the more certain is salvation, and the greater the power of the punisher over matter, so that miracles are wrought ; the claim, the right estab- lished over God, from whom self-inflicted penance wrenches privilege ; the incessant assertion of sin in io6 Tennyson apparent or real humility lest God should catch him tripping ; the steady underlying vanity and boastfulness ; his contempt of the flesh-ridden people ; his isolation- all these and far more are given in this admirable study, filled with thought and insight. Rarely has Tennyson thrown himself more completely out of himself. More- over, and this is perhaps the best and most poetic thing in the piece, he does not make us dislike or despise the Saint. We touch the human soul of one whom we can pity, and even admire. Nearly forty years of that mad existence had not unmanned the ascetic altogether. To convey that impression was an excellent trait of art. I cannot find a like pleasure in The Two Voices. As much as Tennyson has gone outside himself in Simeon Stylites, so much has he gone into himself in The Two Voices. A man may do that and be still poetic, and the poem proves this. It is full of a poet's power, espe- cially in the illustrations taken from Nature, like that of the dragon-fly and the mountain-angle jutting clear from the mist ; but the self-involution of the poem places it on a lower level than poetry which loses self- thought in the creation of a being beyond the self of the poet. Moreover, the argumentative form lowers still more the power of making excellent poetry. The best part is where the disputing voices have ceased to talk, where the poet throws open the window, and sees every one going to church in the summer morning. The Vision of Sin is, on the contrary, one of the very good things in this book. It is allegorical, but not too The Poems of 1842 107 allegorical. The youth who rides to the palace and who rides away into the waste, a ruined cynic, dominates the allegory by his personality ; and our interest in him and his fate is greater than that we feel in the meaning of the poem. Nevertheless, both the thoughts and the alle- gory are of a quality as original as they are just. Ten- nyson has never done better thinking. The youth who rides the horse of the soul, winged with aspiration and imagination, weighs the horse down, for he has already been mastered by the flesh. He is led into the palace of sensual pleasure, not coarse but refined pleasure, slipping incessantly, however, into coarser forms. The main contention of the allegory is that subtilised sensu- ality is finally driven, in order to capture fresh pleasure, into wilder, fiercer, and baser forms, till all pleasure dies. Then the mist of satiety, A vapour heavy, hueless, formless, cold, creeps slowly on from where Eternal Law, sitting be- yond the darkness and the cataract and annexing the punishment of exhaustion to unbroken indulgence, makes himself an awful rose of dawn. The end of the youth is shamelessness and malice, disbelief in love and goodness, scorn of self and scorn of man, sour cynicism — and the picture of this state of mind is admirably drawn in the jumping verses that follow. But Tennyson does not leave him to utter loss. The mystic mountain range arises again. In the gulf below, the sensual who in their youth were io8 Tennyson half divine are devoured by worms, and quicken into lower forms ; but three Spirits apart, three Spirits of judgment, speak of the youth who has ruined his life. The world beyond takes interest in him. The first says : Behold ! it was a crime Of sense avenged by sense that wore with time. The truth could not be more briefly or better put. Every lust of sense is driven, in order to re-take the original pleasure, to increase the stimulant, to make it fiercer and more brutal. At last no stimulation awakens the sense, for the stimulation has paralysed it. This is sense avenged by sense. But the man is forced to go on with the sensual effort, as a drunkard is forced to go on drinking, while at the same time no pleasure attends the effort. The sense has worn with time. Justice is done. But the loss of all pleasure has made him hate happi- ness, call it vile, and scorn both God and man. So another Spirit cries : The crime of sense became The crime of malice, and is equal blame. Nevertheless, the man is not wholly lost. Were he absolutely evil, he would have had no feeling, no scorn, no mockery ; he could not even see the love and good- ness at which he grins. So another Spirit answers : He had not wholly quenched his power. A little grain of conscience made him sour. The Poems of 1842 109 Then a voice cries, Is there any hope ? and the close of the poem is majestic. To which an answer peal'd from that high land, But in a tongue no man could understand ; And on the glimmering limit far withdrawn God made Himself an awful rose of dawn. Moreover, this poem, with the Ulysses, marks with great clearness what an advance Tennyson had made in his art since 1833. It was plain now that he deserved his audience, and that he was determined to be more and more master of his art. He had laboured at perfecting its powers. Metre is no more a difficulty. The rush of the lines of Locksley Hall is like the incom- ing of billows on the beach. The thing to be said is always given a poetic turn ; there is not a line of prose in the whole book. The subjects are worthy, are human, are at our doors. They are still evolved out of his own consciousness, out of his own life and feeling ; but they are moving on to the time when the subjects will come from without, when the thought and feeling of universal man will press on him, and demand that he should express it. Not only the present, but the future is beginning to interest him, For he sings of what the world will be When the years have died away. CHAPTER IV THE CLASSICAL AND ROMANTIC POEMS OF 1 842 WITH THE LATER CLASSICAL POEMS THE classical poems in the volume of 1833 were two, CEnone and The Lotos-Eaters. I have kept them for separate treatment, because in 1842, when they reappeared, they were so largely recast, and their land- scape so changed, that it would have been unfair to Tennyson to consider them save in the finished form he gave them in 1842. In that year also he added another classical poem to these, the Ulysses. These are the three, and the first thing to think of is their landscape, which is distinct and invented. I have said that Tennyson, when he worked on natural scenery outside of his own land, was not a good land- scapist. Not only had he little sympathy with southern Nature, but he also required to assimilate during long years of companionship the scenery he described, before he could, with his full power, embody it in verse. But the impressions he received in travel were brief. They did not soak into him, and he could not reproduce them Classical and Romantic Poems of 1842 in well. This, I said, was the case when he painted direct from Nature. But it is not the case when he invented, when he painted from the vision he had of a landscape in his own soul. He saw it, rising like an exhalation into form around his figures. He took the cloud-shapes, and com- posed them slowly ; rejecting this, accepting that, till he had got the background which he needed for QEnone, or Ulysses, or the mild-eyed Lotos-eaters. Then his Nature-painting, wherever the scene is placed, is fine in itself, and necessarily fits the subject. Of course, he does not stand alone in such invention. Every poet, as every painter, practises, more or less, this part of his art. Wordsworth and Walter Scott are almost solitary in their habit^ rarely infringed, of painting all their land- scape on the spot, direct from Nature. But then, they did not take subjects outside of their own country and their own time, or if they did, as when Wordsworth took a classical subject like Laodamia, they did not put in a landscape. But the greater number of the poets invent ; and there is no more fascinating subject in literature, or one as yet more untouched, than this invented landscape of the poets. In what way each of them did it ; their favourite tricks in doing it ; the different way each of them uses Nature for his purpose or his figures ; the limits of invented landscape ; its analogies to landscape painting — these are all branches of the subject, and when we have little to do and want amusement, we 112 Tennyson could not find happier entertainment than the study of this kind of Nature-painting in Shelley or Keats or Spenser ; or, when we have done such a study of two or three poets' work, than a comparison of their separate methods of invention. Such invented landscape is sometimes done from a previous study from Nature which is worked up after- wards into a picture, and of this the landscape in the CEnone of 1833 is an instance. At other times, it is a picture composed out of various impressions of diverse places brought together into one landscape, and this is the case with a number of the landscapes in The Revolt of Islam, and in the Prometheus Unbound. It is some- times used to illustrate the human passions treated of in the poem, the landscape echoing as it were the feelings of the persons, even the progress of their thoughts. Spenser does this echoing landscape with great direct- ness, as in the description of the bower of Acrasia, or of the Cave of Mammon, or of the haunt of Despair. Tennyson does it with great deliberation in The Lotos- Eaters. Shelley, in the latter part of Alastor, makes the whole scene — and especially the course of the river down the glen, the narrowing of the glen, and the sud- den opening out of its jaws on a vast landscape lying far below in the dying sunlight — image, step by step, the thoughts of his poet wandering to his death. Sometimes this invented landscape is simply a background, without any purpose in it, only that the tones are kept in har- mony with the human action ; and sometimes it is done Classical and Romantic Poems of 1842 j 13 for pure pleasure in composing Nature, but in that case, when there are human beings in the foreground of the poem, there is a great danger lest Nature overwhelm humanity in the poem, or lest the poem lack unity ; and both these pitfalls, for example, are fallen into by Keats in Endymion. In classical poems, the landscape must of course be invented, unless, like the Pre-Raphaelite Brotherhood, the poet should go to Troy or Ithaca, and describe things as they are now, in order to gain local colour. Since the days of Pre-Raphaelitism, some poets have used this way, but for the most part they invent ; and Tennyson saw his Lotos Island and the Mount of Ida only " with the intellectual eye." In CEnone, however, he began with direct description, with his eye upon the scene. It was a valley in the Pyrenees, we are told, which he chose as background for his betrayed maiden, for Paris and the goddesses, when he wrote of them in 1833 ; and here is this first landscape : There is a dale in Ida, lovelier Than any in old Ionia, beautiful With emerald slopes of sunny sward, that lean Above the loud glenriver, which hath worn A path thro' steepdown granite walls below Mantled with flowering tendriltwine. In front The cedar-shadowy valleys open wide. Far seen, high over all the Godbuilt wall And many a snowycolumned range divine, Mounted with awful sculptures — men and Gods, The work of Gods — bright on the dark blue sky The windy citadel of llion Shone, like the crown of Troas. 114 Tennyson As Tennyson thought of this, he saw how poor it was in comparison with what he might do if he chose. The blank verse hahs ; a hurly-burly of vowels like " Than any in old Ionia " is a sorrowful thing ; there is no care- ful composition of the picture ; the things described have not that vital connection one with the other which should enable the imaginative eye to follow them step by step down the valley till it opens on the plain where Troy stands white, below its citadel. Now observe what an artist who has trained his powers can make of his first rough sketch, when, neglecting what he has seen, he invents and composes with imaginative care. Here is the picture of 1842 made out of the sketch of 1833 : There lies a vale in Ida, lovelier Than all the valleys of Ionian hills. The swimming vapour slopes athwart the glen, Puts forth an arm, and creeps from pine to pine. And loiters, slowly drawn. On either hand The lawns and meadow-ledges midway down Hang rich in flowers, and far below them roars The long brook falling thro' the clov'n ravine In cataract after cataract to the sea. Behind the valley topmost Gargarus Stands up and takes the morning : but in front The gorges, opening wide apart, reveal Troas and Ilion's column'd citadel. The crown of Troas. The verse is now weighty and poised and nobly paused — yet it moves swiftly enough. The landscape now is absolutely clear, and it is partly done by cautious additions to the original sketch. Moreover, being seen Classical and Romantic Poems of 1842 115 by the imagination in an hour of joy, it is far truer in its details to Nature than the previous sketch. In any invented landscape, though the whole has not been seen in Nature, the parts must be true to her ways ; and noth- ing can image better the actual thing than that phrase concerning a lonely peak at dawn, that it " takes the morning" ; nor the lifting and slow absorption of the mists of night when the sun slants warm into the pines of the glen, than those slow-wrought, concentrated lines about the mountain vapour. That is one illustration of my point, and in this in- stance the original has been expanded. I will now com- pare another piece of the CEnone of 1833 with its new form in 1842. Here there is no expansion, there is con- traction. The original was too diffuse : it is now con- cised with admirable force. This is the original description of the coming of the goddesses : It was the deep midnoon ; one silvery cloud Had lost his way among the piney hills. They came — all three — the Olympian goddesses : Naked they came to the smoothswarded bower, Lustrous with lily flower, violeteyed Both white and blue, with lotetree-fruit thickset, Shadowed with singing pine ; and all the while, Above, the overivandering ivy and vine This way and that in many a wild festoon Ran riot, garlanding the gnarled boughs With bunch and berry and flower thro' and thro'. And this is the new thing, with its one line — ■' And at their feet the crocus brake like fire ' — ii6 Tennyson which is the centre light and passion of the whole, which fills the scene, not only with golden glory, but with the immortal power of the gods, before whose deity Nature blossoms into worship : It was the deep mid-noon : one silvery cloud Had lost his way between the piney sides Of this long glen. Then to the bower they came, Naked they came to the smooth-swarded bower, And at their feet the crocus brake like fire, Violet, amaracus, and asphodel, Lotus and lilies : and a wind arose. And overhead the wandering ivy and vine. This way and that, in many a wild festoon Ran riot, garlanding the gnarlid boughs With bunch and berry and flower thro' and thro'. Nothing can be more careful than the composition of this background for the goddesses. Some have said that it is a little too pictorial for poetry ; but we will be thankful that we have a piece of work of a kind which was then new in poetry, and that it is splendidly done.* But there is something more to say. In the original cast, the scenery of the poem was not fully inwoven with * See how Tennyson has left out the thoroughly bad line — " They came — all three — the Olympian goddesses " — how he has made melo- dious the halting lines, such as " Both white and blue, with lotetree- fruit thickset " ; and how the confusion of colour and flowers, the over-description of the flowers, and the addition of the pine-groves above the bower, all of which take our eyes away from the god- desses, are omitted or reduced to simplicity. Moreover he knew clearly the good things in his original verses and did not touch those admirable four last lines. He may have had in his ear Milton's " with the gadding vine o'ergrown," but if so — how delightfully he has fulfilled that which Milton only touched with a single adjective. Classical and Romantic Poems of 1842 1 17 Qinone's mind. It did not fit her or feel with her as subtly and intimately as he wished ; she did not seem to have lived with it in long association — a thing Tennyson felt was necessary for himself if he were to describe a landscape perfectly. Nor were the mountains or the woods or the gorge in the first draft deep enough or high enough for her passion or for the fateful meeting of the goddesses, or sombre enough for her misery or for the fate of Troy, which lies beyond the poem and yet is contained within its action. To fulfil and embody in the landscape these various hues of passion, to make the landscape more absolutely one with them, Tennyson set himself to work in the new poem, and he did it by adding a touch here and a touch there, by describing the landscape — a trick of his which he first used in Mariana — at different times of the day with a greater fulness than before, until at last we can no more divide CEnone from the Nature in which she is placed than we can separate the soul from the body of a friend. She is involved in the Nature which surrounds her, and the Nature in which she lives has mixed itself with her thought and her passion. Her constant cry, even in the first draft, proves this : O mother Ida, harken ere I die ! This power of forging together Nature and the heart of man adds emotion to the skill with which the occa- sional figures are placed in the landscape, and to the vividness with which they are suddenly, almost flamingly. ii8 Tennyson struck upon the sight. I need not quote the splendid image of Aphrodite in this poem, but here is Paris issu- ing from the wood : Beautiful Paris, evil-hearted Paris, Leading a jet-black goat white-horned, white-hooved, Came up from reedy Simois all alone. White-breasted like a star Fronting the dawn he moved ; a leopard skin Droop'd from his shoulder, but his sunny hair Cluster'd about his temples like a god's ; And his cheek brighten'd as the foam-bow brightens When the wind blows the foam. From end to end the Idylls of the King is full of figure- painting, as illuminated and illuminating the scene, as that of Paris here on Ida. Another example, from The Lady of Shalott, where Sir Lancelot comes riding down by the river side, is too well known to quote. These are the first five lines of it : A bow-shot from her bower-eaves, He rode between the barley-sheaves ; The sun came dazzling thro' the leaves And flamed upon the brazen greaves Of bold Sir Lancelot. The rest of it is equally brilliant. Horse and man, sunlight and scenery, gleaming river and glancing ar- mour — how they fit together, into what unity of impres- sion they are knit ! The verse flashes and scintillates like the armour, like the eyes of Lancelot in the sun- light. The passage is perhaps almost over-sparkled, and it might be chastened a little, shortened by at least one verse, and improved ; but it is a wonderful piece of gold Classical and Romantic Poems of 1842 119 and jewel-work, and only Milton can excel it in its own sphere. We might compare it with the description of Raphael and his dress in Paradise Lost. Of course the Miltonic work is the more dignified, for the figure is that of the Angel of the Earth. Milton's verse too is stately — blank verse, not the jingling trot of the light metre Tennyson chose for his lightly imagined subject — but the colour, the clearness, the presentation of the dress and the figure, the many-hued sculpture, and the glori- ous gleaming of Milton's Archangel, make clear to us on what master Tennyson, even in these pictorial matters, now modelled his technical work. Such, to return from this excursion on figure-drawing, is the invented landscape in CEnone. But fine landscape and fine figure-drawing are not enough to make a fine poem. Human interest, human passion, must be greater than Nature, and dominate the subject. Indeed, all this lovely scenery is nothing in comparison with the sorrow and love of CEnone, recalling her lost love in the places where once she lived in joy. This is the main humanity of the poem. But there is more. Her common sorrow is lifted almost into the proportions of Greek tragedy by its cause and by its results. It is caused by a quarrel in Olympus, and the mountain nymph is sacrificed without a thought to the vanity of the careless gods. That is an ever-recurring tragedy in human history. Moreover, the personal tragedy deepens when we see the fateful dread in QEnone's heart that she will far away in time hold her lover's life in her hands, and refuse to give it back to I20 Tennyson him — a fatality that Tennyson treated before he died. And secondly, CEnone's sorrow is lifted into dignity by the vast results which flowed from its cause. Behind it were the mighty fates of Troy, the ten years' battle, the anger of Achilles, the wanderings of Ulysses, the tragedy of Agamemnon, the founding of Rome, and the three great epics of the ancient world. This was then a subject well chosen, holding in it mighty human thoughts and destinies, and these are liv- ing in the poem. But there is something more to say. Tennyson, in the way I have already explained, makes all these classic poems fit in with modern times and in- struct the conscience or enhance the aspiration of those who read his work. Wordsworth did this in his Lao- damia and Dion. Keats did not do it, Greek as were his subjects. He loved their beauty, not their lessons to mankind. Tennyson does give what Wordsworth does not — their sensuous beauty — but he also gives their uni- versal lesson. And in CEnone he lays down that which in all his poetry and in his character also was one of the first of thoughts to him, not only the foundation of life, and government, of true power, and, in the end, of beauty, but also the root of the glory and strength of England as he wished her to be. This is held in the speech of Pallas, and is the centre of the poem : Self-reverence, self-knowledge, self-control, These three alone lead life to sovereign power. Yet not for power (power of herself Would come uncall'd for) but to live by law. Classical and Romantic Poems of 1842 121 Acting the law we live by without fear ; And, because right is right, to follow right Were wisdom in the scorn of consequence. I woo thee not with gifts. Sequel of guerdon could not alter me To fairer. Judge thou me by what I am. So shalt thou find me fairest. Oh, rest thee sure That T shall love thee well and clea^'e to tliee, So that ray vigour, wedded to thy blood. Shall strike within thy pulses, like a god's. To push thee forward thro' a life of shocks. Dangers, and deeds, until endurance grow Sinew'd with action, and the full-grown will. Circled thro' all experiences, pure law, Commeasure perfect freedom. In these thoughts we pierce down to one of the roots of Tennyson. On those thoughts he built his patriotic poetry. In order to enhance those thoughts, he built as their contrast and opposite the character of the hero in the two Locksley Halls. On those lines he draws the character of King Arthur. On those lines, in a hundred poems, he lays down what he considers to be the great- ness of England, the greatness of mankind. Athena in the heart, to use Ruskin's phrase, is a universal need ; and the expression of this thought of Tennyson's makes (Enone not only a classic but a modern poem. In The Lotos-Eaters the landscape is also invented. There is no description in the Odyssey of the land of " the Lotos-eaters, who eat a flowery food." It is only said that " whoso ate the honey-sweet fruit of the lotos had no desire to bring tidings to the ship, or to come 122 Tennyson back to it, but chose to dwell among the lotos-eating folk, and, forgetful of returning, fed upon the lotos." This is the source of Tennyson's poem. But in a Nature-loving world like ours and midst of that modern poetic temper which makes Nature reflect humanity, so simple a treatment is not enough for Tennyson. He drives the bark of Ulysses into a shallow bay opening up shoreward into a deep valley bordered with cliffs, down whose sides thin streams of silken mist are falling, and at the head of the valley three snow-crowned mountain- peaks are rosy in the sunset. The vale is filled with the soft murmur of a river which glides at last through the yellow sand of the seashore into the sea over which the sun is setting. This is his landscape, and everywhere below the pines, in every creek and alley, on every lawn, beside every stream, the lotos blooms and sheds its yellow dust upon the weary wind. But the landscape itself is not enough. It must be put into harmony with the soft oblivion which the lotos brings, with the rest and slumber of life dreaming that it dreams. So the air is languid, and the moon has completed its waxing and is full-faced ; and the streams fall in slow-dropping veils of thinnest lawn, and their sheets of foam are slumbrous, and the snow on the rosy peaks is very old, and the amber light dreams, and the waves curve tenderly upon the land, and the leaf and the apple on the trees round to fulness and fall, full ripe, and all the winds and sounds are low. Nature, like the indwellers of the land, has eaten of the indolent Classical and Romantic Poems of 1842 123 forgetfulness of the flower. This is the poet's way, and he had his examples of this kind of work in Spenser's Cave of Sleep and in Thomson' s Castle of Indolence ; but I think he has excelled them both. As to the main thought of the poem, it is, like that of these classical poems in general, of great simplicity, and its feeling felt at all times of human life. " Why should we only toil, the roof and crown of things ? Death is the end of life, why then should life be labour ? Let us alone. What pleasure can we have To war with evil ? Is there any peace In ever climbing up the climbing wave? Enough of action, of trouble on trouble, pain on pain. No more of pursuit, of mending what is broken, of the strife of love. To dream, to sleep : Oh rest ye, brother mariners, we will not wander more." The first sketch of this thought was in the Sea-Fairies of 1830, and a lightly treated thing it was. Then that was made into The Lotos-Eaters of 1833, the first part of which is kept in the recast of the poem of 1842. But in the latter part, a great and vital change was made. First, the passage. Dear is the memory of our wedded lives, etc., was added, and it is a passage which doubles the human interest of the poem ; and, secondly, instead of the jingling, unintellectual, merely fanciful ending of the 1 24 Tennyson poem of 1833, every image of which wanders hither and thither without clear purpose and weakens the impression of the previous part, the poem thus closing in a feeble anti-climax, we have the weighty, solemn, thoughtful, classic close, embodying the Epicurean con- ception of the gods, bringing all Olympus down into harmony with the indifferent dreaming of the Lotos- eaters, but leaving in our minds the sense of a dreadful woe tending on those that dream ; for what the gods do with impunity, man may not do. Yet, even the Lotos-eating Gods inevitable fate awaits. This is the work of a great artist, and in this steady improvement of his poems Tennyson stands almost alone. Other poets, Wordsworth, Shelley, Keats, did not recast their poems in this wholesale fashion, and the additions or changes which they made were by no means always improvements. Tennyson, working with his clear sense of what was artistic, and with the stately steadiness which belonged to his character, not only im- proved but doubled the value of the poems he altered.* Many persons would like another kind of artist — one who does at a rush what he desires to do, or one who could * It would be an excellent thing if Lord Tennyson would permit Messrs. Macmillan to reprint the volumes of 1830 and 1833. In most cases it is a mistake to issue the earliest forms of a great poet's works — -forms which he has rejected as inadequate. But in this case it would not be a mistake. It would be a lesson to all artists, and still more to all critics, to study the noble changes Tennyson here made ; and it would not diminish, but greatly enhance, our admira- tion of his art and character. Classical and Romantic Poems of 1842 125 not go back on what he had done, because new things occur to him incessantly ; and this our liking is a matter of temperament. But Tennyson was built in another fashion. What he did was wholly in harmony with the man, and our business is not to wish the artist different, but to find out what he is, and to love him within the necessary limits of his sphere. In that way we get his good, and are not troubled by his weaknesses. The last of the classical poems in the volume of 1842 is, from contemplation's point of view, the best. This is the Ulysses. The scene is set on the shore of Ithaca, at the port. The time is evening. The moon is rising and the sea is gloomed by the shadows of the coming night. There is no description of the landscape, but enough is given to make us feel the time and place. Yet when Tennyson touches Nature in this poem it is done with even more mastery than in CEnone ; with ex- traordinary brevity and force. A whole world of ocean weather and of sea experience is in the last two lines of this: All times I have enjoy'd Greatly, have suffer'd greatly, both with those That loved me, and alone : on shore, and when Thro' scudding drifts the rainy Hyades Vext the dim sea : And I quote the three lines which follow, not only because the Nature in them strikes the note of that pro- found melancholy which lay underneath the intense and hopeless curiosity of the Renaissance — the same kind of 126 Tennyson curiosity which Ulysses feels in this poem — but also because the second line is one of Tennyson's finest examples of sound echoing the sense : The lights begin to twinkle from the rocks : The long day wanes : the slow moon climbs ; the deep Moans round with many voices. But the dominant interest here, more than in CEnone and The Lotos-Eaters, is the human interest — the soul that cannot rest, whom the unknown always allures to action — the image of the exact opposite of the temper of mind of the Lotos-eaters. Yet all experience is an arch wherethro' Gleams that untravell'd world, whose margin fades For ever and for ever when I move. How dull it is to pause, to make an end, To rust unburnish'd, not to shine in use ! As tho' to breathe were life. Life piled on life Were all too little, — and of one to me Little remains : but every hour is saved From that eternal silence, something more, A bringer of new things ; and vile it were For some three suns to store and hoard myself, And this gray spirit yearning in desire To follow knowledge like a sinking star. Beyond the utmost bound of human thought. There never was a better description of the temper of the higher spirits of the Renaissance in Italy. We listen to the very soul of Leonardo da Vinci. This too is Tennyson. I have heard it said that, in this poem, he drevi^ the portrait of his own mind. I can well believe it, and it is a noble temper with which to Classical and Romantic Poems of 1842 127 step into the fuller manhood of middle life. Indeed, he never thought it too late to seek in his own art a newer world. Even at eighty years he took new subjects and tried new ways in poetry. The cry of his Ulysses was the cry of his old age : Tho' much is taken, much abides : and tho' We are not now that strength which in old days Moved earth and heaven ; that which we are, we are : One equal temper of heroic hearts, Made weak by time and fate, but strong in will To strive, to seek, to find, and not to yield. Thus he returned to the Greek, as Keats had done ; but not as Keats, only for the sake of the beauty of Greece, but also for the sake of the ethic power of her stories ; not like Keats, that he might iind in ancient times a refuge from the baseness of the present, but that he might bring thoughts out of the past to rejoice and illuminate the present. The speech of Pallas to Paris is spoken to England : the song of the Lotos- eater is a warning to the drifters and dreamers of our world ; in the thoughts of Ulysses is held the power and the glory of England. Nevertheless, though these poems have an ethical direction, it is subordinate to their first direction, which is to represent the beauty in their sub- jects. No one who has any sense of art will presume to accuse them of being didactic rather than artistic. It was, however, not only in Greek story that in these years he sought his subjects. He turned to that great romantic cycle which has for eight centuries at least 128 Tennyson kindled the imagination of England and been the dar- ling of her poets. He turned to the tale of Arthur and his knights. It may be that his study of Milton, which now appears so clearly in his blank verse, had made him think, quite early in life, of an Arthurian epic, which, if Milton swerved from, he might himself fulfil ; but it is proba- ble that this interest was at first only a slight and glan- cing interest, such as every poetic person takes in the tale with all its Celtic allurement. The small fragment of Launcelot and Guinevere is only a charming piece of glit- tering grace. The Lady of Shalott is' a pleasant piece of play with his readers- — simplicity in a mask of mysti- cism. Sir Galahad is graver, but still only an occasional piece, such as a poet makes " to try his hand." Of these The Lady of Shalott is the best, as it is in- tended to be. No poem is more brilliant in words, but it does not attempt so much as Sir Galahad to make the sound of the verse describe the thing. It has no lines so imitative as The shattering trumpet shrilleth high, but it has that amazing piece of diamond description which I have already quoted. As to its meaning, folk have exhausted themselves to find it, and fruitlessly. It was never intended to have any special meaning. Ten- nyson was playing with his own imagination when he wrote it. He saw the island and the girl in the tower, and then the loom and web and mirror crept into the tower ; Classical and Romantic Poems of 1842 129 and then he saw the pictures in the mirror, and was pleased to describe them ; and then he thought of the curse, and then of Lancelot, and then of death. The poem grew without intention like a flower which had not been on earth before. Yet out of all the fancy arose one touch of reality. What a secluded maid sees are but pictures, but the hour comes when she says, " I am half sick of shadows." To know that the pictures of the mind are shadows is to be wild to seek reality. Then if love come, hopeless love, all the world of mere phan- tasy breaks up, and the actual kills : Out flew the web and floated wide ; The mirror crack'd from side to side ; " The curse come upon me,'' cried The Lady of Shalott. If there be meaning at all in this piece of gossamer fancy, that is it, and, like all Tennyson's meanings, it is as simple as the day. As to the Sir Galahad, the true romantic note which, in the creation of Galahad, is made to thrill more high and clear by the addition of the keener note of vir- ginity, fills that poem. The conception of the total conquest of the evil of matter, of the total indifference to all appetite and sense, so that life on earth was lived in a supersensuous realm wherein all things and beings thought to be invisible were visible — was a con- ception of pure art, I might even say of pure romance. In that conception religious passion was added to ro- mance, and asceticism clothed with spiritual beauty. 130 Tennyson Art, therefore, found in it one of its natural subjects. Tennyson, even more than in the Galahad of the Idylh of t}ie King, seized in this poem the beauty of celestial purity, and of the supernatural world it opened to his virgin knight. No one can speak too highly of verses like that beginning : When down the stormy crescent goes, or the two that follow it. It is not only Galahad who is represented in them as above Nature, but it is that Nature herself, while she is seen and heard, is spirit- ualised. In their high-ringing clang we feel the world which is the substance of the shadow-world we see. When we come to the Morte d^ Arthur, we come to that which is more serious than these tentative flights over a great subject. We come to the love of a lifetime. The poem itself belongs to the Idylls of the King, and I shall speak of it in its place. But the prologue and epilogue belong to the history of 1842, and to the whole subject of this chapter. The prologue, with its types of modern social life, the parson, the poet, and the man of the day — each giving and taking as in a dinner- conversation — each in their way maintaining that poetry must sit close to the life of the present — shows how vivid modern society was now to Tennyson. " A truth looks freshest in the fashion of the day." The phrase em- bodies his method in these poems. Nor must we miss his description of himself. No one who has ever heard him read his own poetry can mistake the portrait : Classical and Romantic Poems of 1842 131 . . . . And the poet, little urged. But with some prelude of disparagement, Read, mouthing out his hollow oes and aes, Deep-chested music. It could not be more truly done. As to the epilogue, it illustrates all I have been saying about Tennyson's method with subjects drawn from Greek or romantic times. He filled and sustained those subjects with thoughts which were as modern as they were ancient. While he placed his readers in Camelot, Ithaca, or Ida, he made them feel also that they were standing in London, Oxford, or an English woodland. When the Morte (f Arthur is finished, the hearer of it sits rapt. There were " modern touches here and there," he says, and when he sleeps, he dreams of King Arthur, like a modern gentleman Of stateliest port ; and all the people cried, " Arthur is come again ; he cannot die." Then those that stood upon the hills behind Repeated — " Come again, and thrice as fair" ; And, further inland, voices echoed— "Come With all good things, and war shall be no more." The old tale, thus modernised in an epilogue, does not lose its dignity ; for now the recoming of Arthur is the recoming of Christ in a wider and fairer Christianity. We feel here how the new movement of religion and theology had sent its full and exciting wave into Tenny- son. Arthur's death in the battle and the mist is the death of a form of Christianity which, exhausted, died in doubt and darkness. His advent as a modern gentle- 132 Tennyson man is the coming of a brighter and more loving Christ into the hearts of men. For so ends the epilogue. When the voices cry, " Come again, with all good things," At this a hundred bells began to peal, That with the sound I woke, and heard indeed The clear church-bells ring in the Christmas-mom, This inoculation of ancient stories with modern thought, while the tales themselves were kept either classic or romantic, received its fullest development in the Idylls of the King. But it was less and less used in the classic poems written after 1842. They still retained the use of one simple thought around which each poem gathered itself, but this thought ceased to be so plainly modernised as before. Tennyson did not bring Tithonus or Lucretius or Tiresias into England. He went to them and he stayed with their personality and in their time. This change shows, I think, that as his years went by he felt that, having done so much for modem life, he was licensed to live in these poems, if he liked, wholly among the ancients. It seems fitting to treat of them in this chapter, even though I transgress the chro- nological order in which I generally speak of his poetry. So many writers have written on the knowledge of classic thought displayed in these poems and on their nearness to classic feeling, that I need not dwell upon these matters. It has been a favourite subject of re- views. Many also have drawn attention to Tennyson's frequent use of phrases from the classic writers, and Classical and Romantic Poems of 1842 133 sometimes in such a way as to suggest that he was a plagiarist. This is an absurd suggestion. He had a per- fect right to transfer to his poems expressions and even lines from the classic poets, provided he gave them a new setting, or a novel phrasing, in his translation. All the great poets have done this when their subject was classical, or their poem heroic. Virgil did it, Dante did it ; so did Spenser, Tasso, Ariosto, Racine, Corneille, and Milton ; and it did not occur to their contempo- raries to accuse them of borrowing without acknowledg- ment. There was no acknowledgment needed. The poets thought that every one who read their classic phrases would know whence they came, and would un- derstand that they did not insert their original in a note, just because to do so would insult the culture of their readers. I do not suppose it occurred to Tennyson to explain that something in his Ulysses was owed to Dante, or that " Softer than sleep," or This way and that dividing the swift mind, and a hundred other lines and phrases, were from Virgil or Homer, Sophocles or Pindar, Catullus or Horace. He thought that every one would know these things, and he used them as we use, in writing, phrases from the Bible or Shakespeare without taking the trouble of put- ting them in inverted commas. Moreover, he may have thought that the world would be pleased to find lovely phrases which were the common property of all writers beautifully translated and delightfully reset. Of all the 134 Tennyson half-suggested accusations made against Tennyson, this of plagiarism from the classic poets is, under the cir- cumstances, the most futile and the most invidious. Among these later classic poems, the first, in order of date, is Tithonus. I suppose from internal evidence that this poem, published in i860, was written not very long after the Ulysses. It has the same atmosphere of youthful feeling and the same technical maturity. It seems even finer than the Ulysses as a piece of art. In- deed, nothing of its kind approaches it in modern poetry, nor anything in which the imagination of Tennyson is at work with greater creativeness, insight, pathetic power, passion, noble sensuousness and simplicity. The sub- ject was also one of extraordinary difficulty. It was easy, in comparison, for Tennyson to write the Ulysses. That poem was built out of his own character, and em- bodied a type with which he had the strongest sympathy. But when he wrote of Tithonus he was obliged to get out of himself altogether, or, at least, to use up for his work not a constant, but a temporary attitude of his soul. Moreover, the scene was laid in a dim, unknown country, on the outskirts of the heaven and the earth, below the visible, where there was no landscape. This had to be realised, and it is done with full imagination, not only in the lines which describe the quiet limit of the world — The ever-silent spaces of the East, Far-folded mists, and gleaming halls of mom, but also in the impression made by the whole of the Classical and Romantic Poems of 1842 135 poem. Its world is not a world of night or day, but of the transitory dawn. Aurora herself seems to die at sunrise, and the description of her wakening — the glim- mer on her brow, her sweet eyes slowly brightening before they blind the stars, her wild team shaking the darkness from their loosened manes, and her departure, weeping for her chilly lover — is of the very finest quality. Yet, remote as the place is from humanity, Tennyson has filled his poem with pathetic emotion. Immortal age tied to immortal youth, immortal youth pained for immortal age ; the gift love gave of immor- tality the curse of him to whom it was given, the memory, in decay, of youth and of love once passionate, the dreadful inability to love, the dreadful inability to die — all is subtly, beautifully, and firmly realised. The very movement of the blank verse is tender with the irreparable woe of Tithonus. The main thought of the poem has often been used. Immortality for men, without youth, and with its mem- ories, is an accursed gift. Swift exposed the horror of it in his own savage fashion, lacerating himself and man with self-tormenting scorn. Tennyson has done it with exquisite tenderness for man ; and made the victim think gently of his own race, and truly of their fate : Why should a man desire in any way To vary from the kindly race of men — Of happy men that have the power to die ? Nor does he forget to touch the story with one of those 136 Tennyson ancient thoughts which in all ages have expressed part of the tragic of our destiny : The gods themselves cannot recall their gifts. The next of these classic poems is Lucretius. It is Roman, not Greek, and it bears the impress of the Roman race. In Tennyson's Greek poems, the Greek's grave beauty shines through the modern thought, through the modern description of Nature. Even in speeches like those of Athena and of Ulysses, beauty sits hand in hand with the experience of life. But in Lucretius, stern, robust, rigid duty to self-chosen, self- approved law is first ; the sense of the beautiful as a part of life does not appear in the poem. Lucretius has no religion save that of acceptance of Nature, but to that he is faithful. He has no duty to the gods, but he has duty to his own philosophic honour. He dies rather than be mastered by lustful visions which a Greek, even in the noble time when beauty meant pure harmony, would have gone through, smiled at, and for- gotten. The philosophy also is a Greek philosophy, but Lucretius has made it Roman in temper ; and one of the noble excellences of this poem is that Tennyson has never deviated in a single word from the Roman basis of the soul. Moreover, it takes a great poet to assimilate, as Tennyson has done, the essence of Lucre- tius as a thinker and a poet in the space of about three hundred lines, and to combine this with the representa- Classical and Romantic Poems of 1842 137 tion of a man in an hour of doom and madness, such as an inferior poet, overloading it with frenzied orna- ment, would have made intemperate. Tennyson's masterly reticence, rigid restraint only to the absolutely necessary, are supreme in this poem. Only one passage, that about the breasts of Helen and the sword, seems to me awkward in conception. The introduction is a little masterpiece of statement. In the rest of the poem, independent of the superb setting forth the Epicurean philosophy as grasped and dignified by Lucretius, two things belonging to the con- duct of the subject are remarkable. First, Tennyson has seized on the spasmodic action of a poison to enable him to represent Lucretius as having lucid intervals. A lesser artist would have kept him always in insanity. But Lucretius, whom the poet wishes us to respect while we pity him, is for the most part sane. The in- fluence of the philtre comes on him only in recurring attacks, and between the attacks his mind is clear. Even his moral power, that is, his truth to his own nature, maintains its mastery. Not for an instant does Tenny- son's Lucretius ever truly think that he is the same person as the man who sees the visions of lust. Not for a moment does he confuse his own Alma Venus, the ambrosial, warm and generative power in Nature, with the Cyprian goddess of desire whose dreams invade his soul. Lucretius is, in more than half this poem, the clear thinker, the noble poet, and the lover of passion- less tranquillity who abhors the storm within him. 138 Tennyson Secondly, Tennyson invents, with the greatest skill, a storm in the night to illustrate the tempest in the soul of Lucretius, and at the same time to supply him with a ground for speaking of his Nature-philosophy. The storm suggests the dream of the flaring atom streams. Ruining along the illimitable inane — a line that Milton might have praised. The returning calm of the morning suggests the description of the eternal tranquillity of the gods and their dwelling-place, and to Lucretius, the hope that he may win back his own calm — Seeing with how great ease Nature can smile. Balmier and nobler from her bath of storm, At random ravage. These are the methods of a great artist ; but how the whole poem is wrought, how nobly the character of Lucretius emerges line after line, with what poetic strength and sculpturing power his masculine passion clears its way to death till the brief close shuts up the tragedy, is for every reader to grasp as he has capacity. Tirestas, though published in 1885, is a much earlier poem, perhaps of the same period as Lucretius. I class it here, because the subject, except in the universal thought of sacrifice of life for the good of the State, is not modernised at all. The lines about the gods being slower to forgive than human kings, and those describing the yearning of Tiresias, Classical and Romantic Poems of 1842 139 For larger glimpses of that more than man Which rolls the heavens, and lifts, and lays the deep, Yet loves and hates with mortal hates and loves, are fully classical ; and the way Tiresias thinks and feels throughout is not modern, save perhaps in one passage about the tyranny of all, and the tyranny of one. The poem is said by Tennyson himself to " date many a year ago." We may suppose then that he did not think it good enough to publish alongside of Tithonus or Ulysses ; and indeed it falls far below these poems. It repeats itself, and the conclusion ought not to be so long ; though Tiresias, believed for the first time in his life, might well be excused a little garrulity. But any one may be glad to have a poem which contains that dazzling description of the landscape of the mountain- side in the blaze of the sun, and the royal image of Pallas Athene climbing from the bath in the secret olive glade, and the blinding light of her virgin eyes. Nor is the close less splendid in words and in the huge thought of the last line where the prophet pictures his final rest among the happy vales that Wind, clouded with the grateful incense-fume Of those who mix all odour to the gods On one far height in one far-shining fire. If Demeter and Persephone was written about the time at which it was published, in 1889, it is a wonderful proof of the persistence of mature power in old age. Tennyson was eighty years of age when this poem was I40 Tennyson issued. It bears no traces of failing strength, or of out- worn imagination. Lines like The shrilly whinnyings of the team of Hell, or, The sun Burst from a swimming fleece of winter gray, are as clean-ringing and clear-eyed as any written in 1842. The introduction, with the slow dawning of Per- sephone's recognition of the earth, and of her mother who is the Earth-mother, is as good as the introduction to Lucretius, as delicate and tender as that is strong and austere. The imaginative thought which kept the sol- emn, unhuman darkness of Hades still in the eyes of Persephone — Child, those imperial, disimpassioned eyes Awed even me at first, thy mother — the rapid picture of the lonely Fates, And, following out A league of labyrinthine darkness, came On three gray heads beneath a gleaming rift, who "know not what they spin," and cry, "There is a Fate beyond us " ; the dream of Demeter, which this cry originates, of a race of younger and kindlier gods whose reign and worship will be love, and who will sub- due even Hades to their light ; the sense Tennyson in- fuses into his readers that this dream is born out of the heart of the kindly earth itself — not a Christian thought but an anticipation of that thought ; the ill-content of Classical and Romantic Poems of 1842 141 the Earth-goddess with the highest gods who are old in their careless tyranny, and the founding of this ill- content with them on the ground that she is naturally nearer than they to men and fonder than they of the works of men — is she not the mother of them all ? — the deep sympathy of Demeter with the earth-dwellers, and naturally her greater share in human passion — especially the most human of all passions, that of motherhood — all these ideas, in subtle, half-suggested images, passed through the fire of imagination and made lucid and crys- talline thereby, are wrought into the poem with a power which seems almost incredible in a poet of eighty years. The poem smells of the fruitful rain-washed earth ; the earth breathes and is pregnant and gives birth in it ; all her motherhood loves all her children from line to line of it. Motherhood, first of the earth, and then of Humanity, is the innermost being of the poem — the " deathless heart of motherhood." At last, in order to make this universal more particular and more at home with us, the personal motherhood of Demeter, the motherhood of one heart for one child, is driven home to our imagination. When she loses her child, she im- plores heaven for her, she wanders over all lands to find her, she forgets her own earth ; but the loveliest thing she does — and it is imagined with infinite tenderness — is to console all the troubled mothers of the world. She gives to failing children the same breast which nurtured Persephone — Thy breast to wailing infants in the night. 142 Tennyson The Death of CEnone, the last of these poems, recalls the earliest of them, and the landscape is much the same, only, as it is winter in CEnone's heart, it is now winter by the cave and in the glade, where formerly, at the coming of the goddesses, the greensward of spring burst into fire. And Paris comes to see her as of old, but now Lame, crooked, reeling, livid, thro' the mist, to beg her to heal him of his grievous wound. She refuses ; a woman after ten years of brooding wrath and pain was not likely to forgive. He passes away into the mist, dies, and is burnt on a pyre by the shepherds. She flings herself on the pyre. I do not know the date of this poem — there can never be any proper study of Tennyson until all these late-published poems are accu- rately dated — but it is quite plain that the mind which grasped Ulysses, Lucretius, or even Tiresias, has here lost much of its power. It is well put together as a little tale ; but the subject is not seized by the right handles. I cannot guess to what idea or emotion in Tennyson's mind the story has been sacrificed, but it is sacrificed. It IS too improbable that Paris should walk up Ida to call for CEnone, considering where and how he was wounded ; or stagger down the hill from her. If the art of the piece were made better by this change in the tale, this criticism would be nought ; but it is not made better, and the improbability is impossibility. Nor do I understand the husband and wife and widow business, Classical and Romantic Poems of 1842 143 unless it be that Tennyson desired to express over again his devotion to the eternity and sanctity of the marriage relation. This is wholly out of place in the story. The union between Paris and the nymph Oinone was not a marriage nor anything that resembled it. When we come to Her husband in the flush of youth and dawn, we do not know where we are. We are certainly not on Ida. When we hear QEnone's answer to the cry of Paris for help, we are in the midst, not of the light unions between Greek mortals and the nymphs, but of the social moralities of England. Adulterer, Go back to thine adulteress and die ! This is not credible on the lips of CEnone. Still more strange is that which follows, still more distant from Greek thought. QSnone, the mountain nymph, dreams that Paris calls to her from the other world to come to him, and has repented his unfaithfulness : Come to me, CEnone ! I can wrong thee now no more, CEnone, my CEnone. Christian, it may be, but not Greek ; and, still more, not possible for a nymph to dream. And the end is equally out of the question. It is a pretty thought in itself, and might well belong to a mortal woman, even to an Orien- tal pagan, but it does not belong to a mountain nymph 144 Tennyson of the Greek imagination who never dreamt of mar- riage and would have smiled at any union of the kind : And all at once The morning light of happy marriage broke Thro' all the clouded years of widowhood, And muffling up her comely head, and crying " Husband ! " she leapt upon the funeral pile, And mixt herself with him and past in fire. CHAPTER V THE PRINCESS /'N MEMORIAM is the most complete, most rounded to a polished sphere, of the larger poems of Tennyson ; the Idylls of the King is the most am- bitious ; Maud is the loveliest, most rememberable ; and The Princess is the most delightful. Holiday-hearted, amazingly varied, charming our leisured ease from page to page, it is a poem to read on a sunny day in one of those rare places in the world where " there is no clock in the forest," where the weight and worry of the past, the present, or the future, do not make us conscious of their care. There is no sorrow or sense of the sorrow of the world in it. The man who wrote it had reached maturity, but there is none of the heaviness of maturity in its light movement. It is really gay, as young as the Prince himself who is its hero ; and the dreams and de- sires of youth flit and linger in it as summer bees around the honied flowers. A great charm is thus given to the poem. We feel for it the affection which is bestowed on youthfulness by those who have passed by youthful- lo 145 146 Tennyson ness, that half-regret, half-tenderness, and sweet memory in both, the sadness of which is not too much, and the pleasure of which is not too little. Mingled with the youthfulness in the poem is the serious thought of manhood. There is enough of grav- ity to dignify the subject-matter, and enough of play to take dulness out of the gravity. The poem is like the gray statue of Sir Ralph robed with Lilia's orange scarf and rosy silk. Of course, this twofold element adds to that variety which stirs new pleasure and new thinking from, page to page. But beyond that, the scheme of the poem enabled Tennyson to invent all kinds of fantastic events that follow one another as thickly as they do in a romantic tale ; and he is up to the level of the invention required. One scarcely expects him to do this with ease. Inventiveness of incident lags somewhat in Tenny- son's work. The invention of the greater number of the episodes in the Idylls of the King is excellent. The in- vention of the events which carry on the story is not so good, and it is certainly not opulent. Moreover, we see in the dramas how slow-moving his inventiveness is ; their movement continually drags from the want of that which the dramatists call business. Here, however, the story runs along with a lively variety both of characters and events glancing and charming through it. This variety is still more increased by the mingling of ancient and modern in the poem — modern science jostling with ancient manners, modern dress with ancient arms, girls' colleges with tournaments ; the The Princess 147 woman-question of to-day with the woman-ideal of the days of chivalry ; Joan of Arc with the Cambridge girl ; and the rising out of both — out of the old and the new — first, Tennyson's own view of womanhood, and sec- ondly, that which is always old and new, the eternal feminine face to face with the eternal masculine. More- over, this variety is kindled and brightened with the steady fire of Tennyson's imagination — not, in this poem, the imagination which pierces to the depths of the human heart (for the half-serious, half-grotesque form precluded that), but the imagination which illustrates human life by analogies drawn from Nature. Each comparison fits at every point ; and the things in Nature which are used as comparisons are not only described with extraordinary accuracy, choice, and truth, but are also seen with such love that their inmost heart is touched. When King Gama is sketched, his voice is cracked and small : But bland the smile that like a wrinkling wind On glassy water drove his cheek in lines. Cyril, the Prince's friend, " has a solid base of tempera- ment," but is on the surface lightly blown by impulse. He is like the water-lily, which starts and slides Upon the level in little puffs of wind, Tho' anchor'd to the bottom — such is he. The eyes of Lady Blanche, full of malice, are like "the green malignant light of coming storm," and the 148 Tennyson line is charged with the very colour and rage of tempest on the horizon. There are two similes of the Princess in wrath, one in which the jewel on her brow is like " the mystic fire on a masthead, prophet of storm," and the other where she stands above the tossing crowd of rebellious girls like a beacon-tower above the waves of tempest, which are as absolutely fitted to the emo- tions they illustrate as the glove to the hand. Her angry and scornful smile is compared — and the Nature picture is superb — to A stroke of cruel sunshine on the cliff. When all the glens are drown'd in azure gloom Of thunder-shower. When she is compassed by two armies and the noise of arms, she stands like a stately pine on an island, on each side of which a great cataract divides, " when storm is on the heights," and the torrents roll, Suck'd from the dark heart of the long hills — a splendid concentration of natural truth. When she knows that all her purpose is overthrown, Tennyson uses what he must often have himself seen from the downs of Freshwater to express her pain : As one that climbs a peak to gaze O'er land and main, and sees a great black cloud Drag inward from the deeps, a wall of night. Blot out the slope of sea from verge to shore. And suck the blinding splendour from the sand. And quenching lake by lake and tarn by tarn. Expunge the world. The Princess 149 This and the equally fine description of the whirlwind, tell of Nature in giant effort. But he can see the deli- cate, minute things of Nature just as clearly and describe them with equal force. There is an image of a maiden's thoughts and ways which is as new as it is lovely. Not a thought, a touch But pure as lines of green that streak the white Of the first snow-drop's inner leaves. And when he wishes to reveal how two young hearts slid into love, he says it was no more strange Than when two dew-drops on the petal shake To the same sweet air, and tremble deeper down, And slip at last all-fragrant into one. A perfect image — but to what minute observation it bears witness ! In these examples alone what a range of vision ! How many things and sights were noted and stored up before these were chosen to use ! In what a lucid light they were seen ! With what truth, and, more difficult still to do, with what clearness, fit- ness, finish, and choice expressed ! This is the artist's keen eye, observant love and trained capacity, working together, and it is a pleasure to be led by it to observe more lovingly the world of Nature. From point to point this method of illustrating — a method he learned from Homer — enlightens and expands the poem. These belong to the qualities of Tennyson's mind, but in the prologue and epilogue of The Princess, as well as in the poem itself, we have a picture of some 150 Tennyson points in his character. He feels that he is of the North rather than of the South. And dark and true and tender is the North, is a line in which he paints what he wished to be. His Prince is of the North, and has that special mysticism of the North which appears in the dreams so constantly told in the Icelandic Sagas. He frequently loses con- sciousness of the outward, or rather he loses the con- sciousness of its reality. All around him becomes visionary, or the visionary world becomes the real world, till he is not able to distinguish between both. On a sudden in the midst of men and day, And while I walk'd and talk'd as heretofore, I seem'd to move among a world of ghosts, And feel myself the shadow of a dream — That is Tennyson. He talks of it as a " weird seizure," but it is a common experience. The sudden unsubstan- tialising of the outward world, of all events and places, was Wordsworth's frequent feeling. It is not, indeed, the unique property of the poets, but it brings before us the half-pantheistic idealism which dwelt in Tenny- son's nature side by side with his sturdy realism. The same experience is alluded to in The Holy Grail, and is put in the mouth of Arthur : Let visions of the night or of the day Come, as they will ; and many a time they come. Until this earth he walks on seems not earth. The light that strikes his eyeball is not light, This air that smites his forehead is not air. But vision — yea, his very hand and foot — The Princess 151 Right opposite to this is that rough forcibleness, that downright squareness which in him called a spade a spade, and which is at the root of so many of the poems. Both opposites were well represented in his figure — the great-boned, loose-limbed, gigantesque man, with his domed head — and the soft dark hair, the gentle eyes, and the white, smooth, fine-lined brow, covered with deli- cate skin through which the blue veins shone. Force and fineness were married in his face and form as well as in his verse. Then in this prologue and epilogue there are other characteristics of what he had become. His fancy for science, and for the age in which he lived being made great by science, which springs to light in Locksley Hall, has grown in this poem. His Princess's favourite study is the Natural Sciences. She thinks that learning and philosophy will be the salvation of women. The holi- day-makers in the prologue are taught by facts ; elec- tricity, steam, hydraulics go hand-in-hand with the rustics sports. We have somewhat too much of this. An artist cannot introduce Physical Science into his art- work without introducing trouble into it. Now and again he may play with its results, but it must be play. Tennyson did not always play with it, and he sometimes seemed to feel that Science was more important than Art. Whenever he did, his poetry suffered. However, there are traces enough, especially in his later poems, that he was weary of the claim of Science to be greater than Art, and that he feared it might stifle poetry : 152 Tennyson Let Science prove we are, and then, What matters Science unto men, At least to me ? And he speaks still more particularly in a poem, the Farnassus oi 1889 : What be those two shapes high over the sacred fountain, Taller than all the Muses, and huger than all the mountain ? On those two known . peaks they stand ever spreading and heightening ; Poet, that evergreen laurel is blasted by more than lightning ! Look, in their deep double shadow the crown'd ones all disap- pearing ! Sing like a bird and be happy, nor hope for a deathless hearing ! ' ' Sounding for ever and ever ? " Pass on ! the sight confuses — These are Astronomy and Geology, terrible Muses ! It makes me happier to read that poem, for I know then that he vi^as saved from the impertinent despotism which claims that the reasoning intellect is higher than the imagination, and the work of Science of more impor- tance to man than the work of Art. We see then, that, in his old age, Tennyson felt that beauty and the repre- sentation of it were being crowded out of the world by Science. But we also see in the end of that poem how he consoles himself. " If the poets," he answers, " are crushed here, they need not greatly care. They sing their songs for ever, and other worlds listen." Then, too, his political judgments appear ; and though I have already alluded to them in the introduc- tion to this book, it seems needful to touch on them again in connection with this prologue. We find the The Princess 153 honest Whig views of 1840, modified from their uni- versal aims by a cherished insularity ; a fancy for the squirearchy as the backbone of England ; a sense that the English temper, of which he knew nothing below the middle class, is the only temper in which freedom grows straight. With this there is a steady contempt for France, modified by the thought which seems at some odd moments to have made a lodgment in his mind, that social theories and dreams and the wild popular storms that follow them may be of more use than we think. It occurs to him at times that the world does not always move as England moves, by broadening slowly down from precedent to precedent. It may be there is some use and need, he thinks, for revolutions. The passage I mean begins : " Look there, a garden ! " said my college friend, The Tory member's elder son, and he points to the coast of France, and contrasts " our Britain whole within herself, a nation yet," having a sense of duty, reverence for law, some civic manhood firm against the crowd, with France and the mock heroics of France. And the whole speech and the reply to it are replete with Tennyson, of the same mint as the poem, " Love thou thy land with love far brought," in the volume of 1842. " Have patience," answers another friend, " ourselves are full of social wrong." It is Tennyson's modification of the insular view. And indeed, in 1847, the state of the agricultural labourer, 1 54 Tennyson here pictured on one day of holiday and feasting in the year, under the generosityof Sir Walter, A great, broad-shoulder'd, genial Englishman, was scarcely an inch better than it was in the year 1830, when all rural England was a cry of misery. One of the similes in The Princess is derived from the rick- burning into which the horrors of starvation and dis- ease had driven the people. Of all this, Tennyson had either little conception — only a few cared then, and he was of his time — or he was absorbed in the glory of that English country life in hall and park and comfortable farm which he paints so well, as if that included more than a tenth of the rural population. What of the rest ? The time thought little of them, neither did Tennyson ; and the crowd around the abbey where The Princess is invented are content to cry, and Tennyson seems to think it is enough for them to ask — Why should not these great Sirs Give up their parks some dozen times a year To let the people breathe ? This is Tennyson in the prologue. As to the poem, itself, it enshrines the woman's question as it appeared nearly fifty years ago, and considering all that has been done since then, it is a prophetic utterance. A good deal which is here suggested under a mock-heroic mask has actually been put into practical form. Moreover, he has touched, with grace and clearness, a number of the phases of opinion which now prevail, and which then The Princess 155 had only begun to prevail ; embodying each phase in one of his characters. The woman's question owes a great deal to The Princess. It has been objected to it by the women who want humour (that want so strange and yet so common in women) and who have the faith that science solves all questions (that faith so unex- pected by those who have the traditional conception of a special spirituality in women), " that the poem is not serious, not argumentative, not set on a foundation of facts. The question can only be solved by knowledge, argument, and action." This objection would be valid if this were a treatise, and not a poem. But here the question is brought into the sphere of art, and it must be treated in the manner of art. If it is to be made the subject of a poem, it must not be argumentative, it must not be scientific, and it must not be serious except when emotion intervenes. The moment it argues, it loses its place in the world of art. Every point then which would naturally be argued by the understanding in a treatise, must here be worked by the imagination ; and lest the poem should by any chance slide into reasoning, a gamesome element is added to it, to protect it from becoming scientific. Tennyson, who was an artist, understood this clearly, and wrought out his method with care before he began. He is never serious in The Princess, except when the deep affections of humanity enter into the movement of the piece ; and the affections, in spite of all the wise- acres, are not subject to logic. Science, if it have the 156 Tennyson insolence to ascend the steps of their palace, falls dead upon its threshold. When, then, the affections come in, Tennyson steps into seriousness, but when he has to put opinions, he is light and gay ; and art obliged him, on such a subject, to be serious and gay by turns. The result was, that he was compelled to choose a mock- heroic form in which to build his poem. This would enable him to be sometimes lively and sometimes grave, sometimes grotesque and sometimes noble, sometimes chivalrous and sometimes full of raillery, and sometimes mingling both these opposites ; and the choice of this mode of building his poem gave him great room for ranging, and varied opportunities for imagination. "What style would suit?" he asks. The men required that I should give throughout The sort of mock-heroic gigantesque, With which we banter'd little Lilia first : The women — and perhaps they felt their power, For something in the ballads which they sang, Or in their silent influence as they sat, Had ever seem'd to wrestle with burlesque, And drove us, last, to quite a solemn close — They hated banter, wish'd for something real, A gallant fight, a noble princess — why Not make her true-heroic — true sublime ? Or all, they said, as earnest as the close? Which yet with such a framework scarce could be. Then rose a little feud betwixt the two. Betwixt the mockers and the realists : And I, betwixt them both, to please them both, And yet to give the story as it rose, I moved as in a strange diagonal. And maybe neither pleased myself nor them. The Princess 157 It is not often that an artist explains the way in which he came to choose the form of his architecture, but, given his subject, he could not have chosen it better. The Prince has been betrothed to a Princess in the South, and made her his ideal, loving her from her por- trait. His father sends an embassage to claim her for his son. His claim is put off ; the Princess refuses to marry. She, enthralled with the idea of rescuing women from the slavery of man, has founded a college for girls into which no man shall enter on pain of death. The Prince with two college friends goes on adventure to find the Princess. They disguise themselves as girls and penetrate into the college, betray themselves, are discovered, and would have been slain, had not the Prince saved the life of the Princess. The three men are thrust out of gates with contumely. The Princess refuses all overtures of marriage, and summons her three brothers, huge warriors, to support her cause. Both sides agree to settle the question by a tournament of fifty against fifty knights, and the Prince and his party are wounded and overthrown. Ida, the Princess, moved by the fate of a child who is the pivot of the action here, admits all the wounded to the college, dissolves the col- lege, and, in tending the wounded Prince, finds love at her heart, and they are knit together. These are the main lines of the story. Each of these male characters has his own opinion about womanhood and its sphere, the Prince and his father, Cyril and Florian the two friends of the Prince, the King, the father of the Prin- 158 Tennyson cess, and Arac her brother. Six men then deliver six views of womanhood, embodying six phases of the ques- tion. Then the women have also their say. We hear the view of the mother of the Prince who is dead ; we have the view of Lady Blanche who educated the Prin- cess to despise love and set women against men ; of the Princess's friend. Lady Psyche, who is the child's mother ; of Melissa, a young maiden, and of the mob of girls at college ; finally, of the Princess herself ; so that through the piece almost every phase of opinion on the matter is delivered by both men and women. This is done with great skill and charming art. In the midst, the various offices of womanhood are brought forward by the events of the story, and become part of the question to be solved. Moreover, what motherhood is, is shown in two instances ; what maidenhood is, is also displayed. And woman's friendship with woman is introduced. All these, both those which belong to the men and those which belong to the women, run up at last into the Prin- cess and are bound around her, so that she stands forth alone, the centre of the poem. They also run up into the Prince, but he is kept subordinate, as the poem de- manded, even when, at the end, he gets his way. His opinion prevails, but his personality is less than that of the Princess. This is all admirable art. The scenery, too, of the piece is delightful, full of sunshine, gaiety, and grace. The college, with its grounds and high-wrought architecture, courts and gar- dens, walls and fountains, brightened with glancing girls The Princess 159 and silken-clad professors, is charmingly imagined. We see the view from its walls. The Prince stands upon the northern terrace : And leaning there on those balusters, high Above the empurpled champaign, drank the gale That blown about the foliage underneath, And sated with the innumerable rose, Beat calm upon our eyelids. We watch the Princess, creator of all this beauty, in the great hall, in the fountain-splashing courts, in the gar- dens, among the hills which border the park, on the great meadows of the tumbling river, erect upon the battle- ments above the gates — and we see grouped around her, the whole country, as if with the actual eye. Then we look on the warrior camps, on the tournament and on the battle-field ; and then on the women, issuing from the great bronze valves, and moving through the trees to tend the wounded. And, last of all, we see the college again, its building filled with the wounded, and the girls who stayed flitting through it from couch to couch, or learning love in its bosky alleys. So vividly is it all drawn, that a painter might paint from point to point what the poet has created. The passage beginning — We dropt with evening on a rustic town. Set in a gleaming river's crescent-curve, Close at the boundary of the liberties, will illustrate this careful scene-painting — a word I use without its depreciating note. Nature is not described for her own sake, but inwoven i6o Tennyson in Tennyson's manner with the emotions of those who are looking upon it. When the Prince, full of youthful ardour, resolves to follow his dream, all the woods and wind are with him ; her picture lies In the green gleam of dewy-tassell'd trees, and all the mingled sounds of woods are shaken into one cry of " Follow, follow." The lines I quote below exactly express that which is so rarely observed — the different murmur of differently foliaged trees in a faint wind which a fine ear can distinguish in a wood, but which, when a fuller puff goes by, are merged into one chorus with the singing of birds and tossing of boughs : A wind arose and rush'd upon the South, And shook the songs, the whispers, and the shrieks Of the wild woods together ; and a Voice Went with it, " Follow, follow, thou shalt win." When the Prince has reached the college where the Princess lives, this fine picture of the sea at night is equally descriptive of the fulness of his heart, and the prophecy it makes and loves. Half in doze I seem'd To float about a glimmering night, and watch A full sea, glazed with muffled moonlight, swell On some dark shore just seen that it was rich. And when the dawn of love in the Princess's heart is beginning, the early dawn of nature to which he com- pares it was never more fully or more tenderly imagined than in these lines of lovely simplicity — The Princess i6i Till notice of a change in the dark world Was lispt about the acacias, and a bird, That early woke to feed her little ones. Sent from a dewy breast a cry for light. In the poem, however, there is no elaborate descrip- tion of landscape. The Nature touches are chiefly in the comparisons ; and this is fitly so, for the human interest is manifold. In a single-subject poem like The Gardener's Daughter or CEnone, it is not out of place to have a long description of Nature. The full scenery then illustrates and enforces the simple subject. But long descriptions of Nature in a story with many char- acters and events, would divert the interest from the movement. Like Homer then, and following him, Tennyson keeps his Nature in this heroic tale chiefly for his similes, to strengthen from time to time moments of passion in the tale. The one piece, moreover, in the poem which is fully descriptive of Nature, is not in the story. It is a part of an interlude — the Idyll read by the Princess while she sits by the bedside of the Prince. In its midst is a noble and unique gathering together of the sights and sounds and of the destroying horror of the deep recesses of the upper Alpine gorges, followed by a con- centration into three lines of the sweetness and charm of the pastoral vales of the Alps. " Come down, sweet maid," cried the shepherd from the heights, " for love is of the valley." Love does not care to walk With Death and Morning on the silver horns. Nor wilt thou snare him in the white ravine. i62 Tennyson Nor find him dropt upon the firths of ice, That huddling slant in furrow-cloven falls To roll the torrent out of dusky doors : But follow ; let the torrent dance thee down To find him in the valley : let the wild Lean-headed eagles yelp alone, and leave The monstrous ledges there to slope, and spill Their thousand wreaths of dangling water-smoke, That like a broken purpose waste in air ; So waste not thou : but come ; for all the vales Await thee ; azure pillars of the hearth Arise to thee ; the children call, and I Thy shepherd pipe, and sweet is every sound, Sweeter thy voice, but every sound is sweet ; Myriads of rivulets hurrying thro' the lawn, The moan of doves in immemorial elms. And murmuring of innumerable bees. Finally, with regard to the poem as distinguished from the social question it speaks of, beauty is kept in it pre- eminent. It is first in Tennyson's, as it ought to be in every artist's heart. The subject-matter is bent to the ne- cessity of beauty. The knowledge displayed in it, the various theories concerning womanhood, the choice of scenery, the events, are all chosen and arranged so as to render it possible to enshrine them in beautiful shapes. This general direction towards loveliness is never lost sight of by the poet. It is not that moral aims are neglected, or the increase of human good, or the height- ening of truth, or the declaring of knowledge ; but it is that all these things are made subservient to the mani- festation of beauty. It is the artist's way, and it is the highest way. To say this seems to many to say the The Princess 163 wrong thing. To put the manifestation of beauty on a higher level than the manifestation of morality or knowl- edge appears to them to be too bold. It is to say that Art does more for the world, and teaches better things than either Science or Ethics. But the saying does not seem so strange when we define beauty as the form of love, and its innumerably various images as the images of the thoughts of love. The underlying cause of beauty in all art is this love in the artist's soul, as well as the love which, existing in others and in nature outside of himself, he represents in his art. The greater, the artist, the greater his capacity for loving and for seeing and feeling in men and women what is loving. The greater too is his desire for creat- ing its images and the intensity with which he strives to perfect his gift of creation. This was the longing, and this the strife of Tennyson from end to end of his life. The Princess is only one illustration of these things. The woman's question is not by itself a lovely thing. But it is made beautiful in The Princess^ because every one of its issues is solved by love, by an appeal to some kind or another of love — to filial love, to motherly love, to the associated love of friendship, to the high and sacred love between a maiden and her lover, to the nat- ural love which without particular direction arises out of pity for the helpless, and to the love we feel for the natural world. Thus the various questions that issue out of the main question, and the main question itself, are answered by showing what love would naturally 164 Tennyson reply. Now the effects of true love are always beauti- ful, and he who represents them with love and joy embodies beauty. So Tennyson made the woman's question lovely. But he was so exalted by this abiding in love that he could not help at times in the poem breaking out into lyric songs, in which he might express a keener feeling of beauty, and reach a higher range of poetry than in the rest of the poem, where the subject forbade him to rise above a certain level. So he wrote in the midst of the poem two love-songs, one of the sorrow of love past by for ever, of the days that are no more ; another of the joyful hope of love, of the days that were to come. The first of these. Tears, idle tears, as I have already said, represents more nearly than any of the songs of Tennyson, but chiefly in the last verse, one phase, at least, of the passion of love between man and woman. It does not represent its enjoyment, but the wild regret of its continued existence in unfulfilment. The three verses which lead up to this intense climax with slow and soft approaches are drenched through and through, more than any other regretful song I know, more even than any of Shelley's songs, in the heavy dew of long and living sorrow for love just touched but unattained. The Princess hears the song and calls its tone to order. If indeed there haunt About the moulder'd lodges of the past So sweet a voice and vague, fatal to men, Well needs it we should cram our ears with wool And so pass by. The Princess 165 Then rising on a wave of hope and effort, she bids her girls sail on to the great year to come, and in one of the noblest similes in the poem, Tennyson paints the disappearance of the mightiest ideas of the past in the warm life of the future. While down the streams that float us each and all To the issue, goes, like glittering bergs of ice, Throne after throne, and molten on the waste Becomes a cloud. At this the Prince, emboldened, sings of hope in love ; a mere love poem the Princess calls it, in her fresh dis- dain. " Great is song," she says, " used to great ends " ; " duer unto freedom, force, and growth of spirit than to junketing and love," phrases which represent Tennyson's own view, in certain moods, of the aim of Poetry. Yet the song is lovely in movement ; its wing-beating and swift-glancing verse is like the flight of the bird that has suggested it. O Swallow, Swallow, flying, flying south. Both songs are unrhymed, yet no one needs the rhyme, so harmoniously is their assonance arranged, not so much at the end of each line as in the body of the lines themselves. Tears, idle tears is a masterpiece of the careful employment of vowels. The song of triumph which Ida sings is also un- rhymed. The comparison of the cause of woman to a tree is too elaborate in detail, and is not throughout well developed, but the last verse has its own splendour, and the tree becomes a Universe-tree. 1 66 Tennyson Our enemies have fall'n, but this shall grow, A night of summer from the heat, a breadth Of autumn, dropping fruits of power ; and roll'd With music in the growing breeze of Time, The tops shall strike from star to star, the fangs Shall move the stony bases of the world. The last song in the body of the poem : Now sleeps the crimson petal, now the white ; is Still unrhymed, and might be called the palace-song of love, so full is it with the rich and lovely things which belong to the royal gardens of the earth, when night in a clear sky has fallen on them. But of itself, the song and the love in it are not of much worth. When Tennyson, however, had read over what he had done, the overwhelming mastery of love, of love of every kind, which fills the poem, urged him to new creation, and he celebrates love in six of its various phases — in six delightful and happy songs, inserted in the third edition between the main divisions of the poem. They were, he says, ballads or songs to give the poets breath- ing space. So The women sang Between the rougher voices of the men, Like linnets in the pauses of the wind. They are all of a sweet and gentle humanity, of a fasci- nating and concentrated brevity, of common moods of human love made by the poet's sympathy and art to shine like the common stars we love so well. The fall- ing out of wife and husband reconciled over the grave The Princess 167 of their child, the mother singing to her babe of his father coming home from sea, the warrior in battle thinking of his home, the iron grief of the soldier's wife melted at last into tears by his child laid upon her knee, the maiden yielding at last to love she had kept at bay — these are the simple subjects of these songs. They please this large poet, he was at home in them, and as long as human nature lasts they will please the world, because they will endear love to the world. Among these the cradle song. Sweet and low, sweet and low, Wind of the western sea, is the most beautiful and writes, as it were, its own music, but the song, The splendour falls on castle walls. And snowy summits old in story, is the noblest, a clear, uplifted, softly-ringing song. It sings, in its short compass, of four worlds, of ancient chivalry, of wild nature, of romance where the horns of Elfland blow, and of the greater future of mankind. And in singing of the last, it touches the main subject of love, love not of person to person, but of each life to all the lives that follow it : Our echoes roll from soul to soul, Ard grow for ever and for ever. Yet it is the lover who tells this to his sweetheart, and the universal element is made delicate by its union with 1 6-8 Tennyson the personal love of these two happy creatures. It is well that the soul of man should enter into the close of the song, but the greatest poetical beauty has been reached in the second verse, where by a magical employ- ment of words the whole world of Elfland is created, and with it all the romantic tales echo in the ear. These are the songs of this delightful poem, and it is with some difficulty that we turn away from them to speak of the way in which Tennyson has treated the social side of his subject. It seems necessary, however, to discuss for a little time his views of the woman's question. w CHAPTER VI THE PRINCESS (Contintted) THE woman's question HEN, in Locksley Hall, Tennyson makes his hero, in his anger, cry Weakness to be wroth with weakness ! woman's pleasure, woman's pain — Nature made them blinder motions bounded in a shallower brain ; Woman is the lesser man, it appears as if the woman's question had already occu- pied his mind. It continued to dwell with him, for in Edwin Morris, a poem published four years after The Princess, the curate, Edward Bull, who was fatter than his cure, answers his friend, a poet, to whom his sweetheart's least remark was worth The experience of the wise, that this idealising of the woman was all nonsense. " I take it," said he God made the woman for the man. And for the good and increase of the world. 169 i^o Tennyson A pretty face is well, and this is well, To have a dame indoors, that trims us up, And keeps us tight : but these unreal ways Seem but the theme of writers, and indeed Worn threadbare. Man is made of solid stuff. I say, God made the woman for the man, And for the good and increase of the world. This is a more Philistine opinion concerning the object of a woman's life than even those held by the kings in The Princess. Tennyson did not agree with that view being exhaustive : " Parson," said I, " you pitch the pipe too low ! " At what note he wished the pipe pitched, we hear in The Princess ; and I write throughout of the poem as it was finished in editions subsequent to that published in 1847. The subject is introduced in the Prologue. A story is read of a feudal heroine of Sir Walter's house (in whose grounds the company are met who make the poem), who rather than yield to the wild will of a king, took arms and conquered him. "Where lives," asks one, " such a woman now ? " And Lilia, Sir Walter's daughter, replies : ' ' There are thousands now Such women, but convention beats them down ; It is but bringing up ; no more than that : You men have done it ; how I hate you all ! O I wish That I were some great princess, I would build The Princess 171 Far off from men a college like a man's, And I would teach them all that men are taught ; We are twice as quick ! But I would make it death For any male thing but to peep at us." The whole question (as Tennyson told it from the woman's side) is there laid down ; and out of Lilia's wish grows the tale. Her view is the same as that of Ida, the Princess. When Ida, however, was young, she dreamt that the man was equal to the woman, but that each was the half of the other, that each fulfilled defect in each, and that together they became the perfect being. This is the view of the Prince at the end of the book, and Ida says the dream was once hers. But when we find her at the beginning of the poem, this is not her view. Women have been made either toys or slaves by men ! Their will, their faculties, their very characters, have been lost in those of men ; their weakness taken advantage of, their ignorance encouraged that they may be kept in subjection. "Women have been great," she cries with indignation, " great in war, great in govern- ment, great in science, great in the work of the world. Why should they not always be as great ? I will make it so, They shall be living wills, and sphered Whole in themselves, and owed to none." She sees thus both types of womanhood, the enslaved and the free ; but she sees only one type of men in their relation to women — those who treat them " either as 172 Tennyson vassals to be beaten or pretty babes to be dandled." It was not wise for the sake of her cause to be thus one- sighted. It began the battle by taking up a position on half a truth. She did wrong to set aside as unworthy, or to be angry with, the opinions of those men who either idealised women, or said that they were the equals of men, but in dissimilar qualities. It was part of her theory of isolation to despise all the views of men on her sex, good and bad alike ; and this foolish con- tempt is even now one of the reasons for the failure or the slow advance of the cause of woman. She makes two more mistakes. What do women need, she asks, to level them with man ? They want nothing but knowledge. Equality of knowledge will equalise them with men. And that they may gain this knowledge, even be free to gain it, there is only one way — isolation from man. The thing needed and the way to win it are thus both laid down, and both are mistakes, then and now. So the college is established. Here, she says, the women shall be moulded to the fuller day ; and then, when the girls are trained at all points as men are trained ; then, when the secular emancipation of half the world will have been wrought, why then, afterwards, let women marry — and everywhere shall be Two heads in council, two beside the hearth, Two in the tangled business of the world, Two in the liberal offices of life, Two plummets dropt from one to sound the abyss The Princess 173 Of science, and the secrets of the mind ; Musician, painter, sculptor, critic, more ; And everywhere the broad and bounteous earth Shall bear a double growth of those rare souls, Poets, whose thoughts enrich the blood of the world. But at present, till the work be done, death to the man who enters the college gates. " Let there be no love yet between man and maid. For there lies our weakness — in our leaning to tenderness, in our personal cry for love. I, for one, will never wed." " What," says the Prince, " have neither love, children, happi- ness, what every woman counts her due?" "Love?" she answers, " I have left its feeble fancy behind me. Children ? Would that they grew like flowers — and yet, in our love of them, we lose the higher things. They kill us with pity, break us with ourselves ! " She feels in that phrase her great difficulty — that Nature is against her — feels it, but does not realise it. She dreads her own womanhood. Yet, she sees no other way of action ; isolation from man is necessary to re-establish the just equality of woman. This is her position, and it includes a denial of natural love which smacks of Lady Blanche, the grim, disappointed woman whom Tennyson creates in order to motive Ida's exclusion of natural affection from her plan. We excuse then what was foolish in Ida's effort ; it is not wholly her fault — but at the same time we lose some of our respect for her intelligence. For to deliberately knock her head against the certain- ties, to believe that they are not certainties and can be dodged, is the greatest of follies. To ignore love between 174 Tennyson the sexes is one of the little games some women play in the battle for their rights. On the contrary, one of the axioms they ought to lay down in the planning of their struggle is that this kind of love is certain to arise. This union made by love is not the only union which ought to exist between man and woman. All the work of the world ought to be done by both of the sexes in harmonious and equal co-operation, each sex taking what fits best its hand. Without this union the world's work is only half done. And with regard to the woman's cause itself, it can make no progress as long as the law that in all work both sexes should labour together is disobeyed. In obedience to that law, which Tennyson in this book meant to dwell upon (at least so far as regards the aim of the Princess), the proper and successful conduct of the woman's cause is everywhere contained. Women sometimes deny this, and try to carry out their aims independent of men. I do not wonder that they make the effort, for men have long shut out women from any active share in a great num- ber of their ends, isolating women in home alone. None, indeed, have violated more than men the law which is here laid down. In that has lain the most cry- ing mistake of civilisation. Owing to that disobedience the whole progress of humanity has made only half the way it would otherwise have done. Government, law, religion, literature, art, commerce, science of all kinds, social order and progress, national and international The Princess 1 75 union, are all only developed to half the excellence they would have reached, had women shared in them as co-workers with men. But the more women believe that this is true, the more foolish it would be for them, for the sake of a petty vengeance or a personal pique, to perpetrate, even at one single point, the same folly — to isolate their work from men as men have isolated their work from women in the past. On the contrary — always together, as Nature means. Tennyson saw this up to a certain point, and now and again in this poem seems to infer the whole of it. But he did not really go so far. He seems to keep himself within equality in married life. But his principle goes beyond that sphere. Day by day his limits fade away. This, then, was Ida's first mistake — isolation of woman from man. The second was that she thought knowledge alone was enough to lift woman into equality with man, to rescue her from her position as toy or slave. Knowl- edge, of course, is good ; the more knowledge women get the better. It is an absolute necessity. But alone it injures more than assists their cause. It does part of their work ; it cannot possibly do all. It can destroy the opinions which make women dolls to be played with or vassals to be exploited. It can supply them with the . tools necessary to carve their way upwards, to take up the works that men assume as only theirs ; but it cannot supply the spirit which feels the right way to do these things ; it cannot create the imaginative or spiritual powers which illuminate or kindle work : nor can it 1 76 Tennyson enable womanhood to guard her own nature from its excesses or defects. By itself, it is weak, save to destroy ignorance or prejudice. And by itself, it has its own prejudices, its own blindness. Worst of all, it has its own vanity, and the vanity of knowledge is the most successful corrupter and overthrower of the noble causes for which mankind has fought and suffered. If this vanity of knowledge should prevail among women (and they are peculiarly liable to it) their cause will break up, the positions they have won will be lost. One of its tendencies, when women think that knowledge is all they need, is to lead them to deny or minimise the radical difference of sex on which Tennyson dwells so much. It is an astonishing piece of folly. Only women could have the audacity to contradict one of the prime- val facts of the universe. It is a case where the vanity of knowledge devours knowledge itself. Again, when knowledge, full of its self-admiration, neglects or denies the imagination, the affections, the sentiment of life ; when it passes by beauty as of no im- portance and looks on the ideal faiths of man as folly — there is nothing which is so certain to take the wrong road, and to ruin the cause it boasts that it supports. Any one of the emotional, imaginative, and spiritual powers of nature directs and moves personal and collec- tive human life more than the intellectual power directed to the objects of knowledge. With all their tendency to run into extremes these powers are safer guides than mere knowledge in the affairs of daily life and in the The Princess 177 working of great human causes. Each of them — emo- tional, imaginative, or spiritual — needs knowledge, and to let any one of them act without knowledge is as fool- ish as to let knowledge act without them. But even when one of them does act alone, it does not do quite as much harm to the progress of humanity as knowledge does, when it isolates itself in its pride as the only mas- ter of action or the only guide of thought. And many women in the present day seem to look with a certain contempt on sentiment, on imagination, on beauty and art, on the affections, on the high pas- sions of the ideal or of the religious life. It is a fatal pride, and a folly for which they will sorely suffer. Women do not want less emotion but larger emotion, nobler and less personal direction of emotion ; more of love and not less, more true passion and not less ; more sense of beauty and not less ; more imagination, more of the energy of faith working by love, more sacrifice of self, that is, more universal, less particular sacrifice. Education in these they want above all, and they want it at present more than men. These, then, were the two great errors into which the Princess fell, and they defeated her cause. And this is the main meaning of Tennyson. The college is broken up first by the love of a man to a maid. Death stands before the Prince, but the danger emboldens him. Over rocks that are steepest Love will find out the way. 1 78 Tennyson What are isolations to that overwhelming conqueror ! Love blows his trumpet, and the walls of the college fall down. Secondly, it is broken up by feminine jealousy. Ida neglects Lady Blanche for Psyche, a younger friend, one nearer her heart, and the clashing of these two (owing to the Princess following her affection) disinte- grates the college. The sketch of this little in-and-out of feeling is no doubt intended by Tennyson to illustrate a danger which does not indeed belong only to the woman's question. Jealousies and personal claims of the sort made by Lady Blanche, personal affections like that of the Princess which neglect some comrades and favour others, personal feelings of any kind pushed athwart the cause — with their envies, their pettiness, even their malignancies, their party preferences, their claims for office, their dwelling on small points which men or women make into important things in order to fix attention on themselves — these are the worms which eat into the heart of great causes and rot away the finest plans. Women are even more subject to these faults than men — not that men are naturally better, but women have not had that public training which men have had in the repression of the personal and all its stupidities. Thirdly, the march of events breaks up the college. The college has isolated itself from the general work of the world. Whenever a movement does that, it is certain to be walked over and crushed by the general movement. Events come knocking at its doors — and The Princess 179 the gates break down under the pressure. The repre- sentation of this is one of the most skilful things that Tennyson has done in this poem. And it will never do for the leaders of the woman's movement to isolate it. It must take part in affairs other than its own, bring them into itself, fit itself to events and events to it — harmonise itself with all the forward forces round about it. Otherwise it will be dissolved and have to crystallise all over again. It is not only the college which is dissolved. The Princess herself is broken down, and at every point this is done by the recurrence of the natural emotions from which she has tried to free her heart lest they should weaken her will. Nature expelled returns all armed. Ida keeps the child of Pysche with her in the college — that is, she keeps with her an impulse to the motherhood she has abjured. She cannot give up the child to its mother. True sympathy with her own sex would not permit her to be guilty of so great a want of nature ; yet, along with this unnatural hardness, she is softened by the child's silent appeal to her woman- hood : " I took it for an hour in mine own bed This morning ; there the tender orphan hands Felt at my heart, and seem'd to charm from thence The wrath I nursed against the world." Her soul, it is plain, is now a kingdom divided against itself. It cannot stand. But when Cyril appeals to her to give it back to the mother, all the woman surges up ; i8o Tennyson she kisses it, and feels that " her heart is barren," and we hear in the phrase the regret of her life for the motherhood she has abandoned. Then she passes by the wounded Prince, and his old father, his beard dab- bled in his son's blood, points to her hair and picture on his heart. She thinks of his love ; and all Her iron will was broken in her mind. Her noble heart was molten in her breast. " Give him to me," she cries, " to tend in the palace." Then she finds her friend Psyche, who begs forgiveness for her flight from the college. At first, rapt in the child, she does not answer. Her brother, who has fought for her, cannot understand her hardness : " Ida — 'sdeath ! You blame the man ; You wrong yourselves — the woman is so hard Upon the woman." Her father cries out at her : " No heart have you." The father of the Prince breaks out : " Woman, whom we thought woman even now, And were half-fool'd to let you tend our son. Because he might have wish'd it — but we see The accomplice of your madness unforgiven ; the rougher hand In safer ; on to the tents ; take up the Prince.'' Step by step, natural love invades her will, love of children, pity for the man who loves her, love of her friend : The touch of that which kills her with herself The Princess i8i drags her from her isolation. Finally, she throws open the whole college in pity of the wounded and in per- sonal indignation with Lady Blanche. Whatever man lies wounded, friend or foe, Shall enter, if he will. Let our girls flit Till the storm die. The same action of natural love besets and conquers Psyche. She will not betray her brother to death, and forgets her oath, and she clung About him, and betwixt them blossom'd up From out a common vein of memory Sweet household talk and phrases of the heartli. Melissa does not bear that heart within her breast, To give three gallant gentlemen to death ; and all the mob of girls cry, when the hour is stormy, that their May is passing — that love, children, ruling of a house are far from them — that men hate learned women. Theirs is the vulgar cry, but it is forced on them by an isolation which denies nature. And the vulgarity passes away when they tend the wounded, when pity and tenderness are allowed full scope, when love is born in the college glades. Thus, the natural affections break down the Princess and her plan. This main contention in the poem is mixed up with a concise representation of the common prejudices of men concerning the work of women. Different char- acters represent different opinions. The father of the 1 82 Tennyson Princess, King Gama, lets things slide. " I let Ida have her way," he says ; " it did not matter to me. I wanted peace and no dispute. Let my daughter play her game." This indifferent, half-contemptuous treatment of the earnestness of women by the man, mingled with an irritating profession of love for them, is not unknown to the women of the present day. Then there is the rough old King, the father of the Prince. He is the image of the savage view come down to modern times. Ida's opinions of her sex and its work are rampant heresy to him. " Look you, sir," he breaks out, " Man is the hunter ■ woman is his game ; " and the lines which follow put this opinion with admira- ble bluntness. Cyril, bold, reckless, and honourable, the lover of the sex, represents another type. When he hears the wo- men lecture, and the Prince says " They do all this as well as we," " They hunt old trails,'' said Cyril, " very well : But when did woman ever yet invent ? " " What is all this learning to me ? I looked on Psyche, and she made me wise in another way. I learnt more from her in a flash than if every Muse tumbled a sci- ence into my empty brain. Love has come in with me into the college, and I have thought to roar, to break my chain, and shake my mane." This is the natural man, who thinks that love is all, who, when he loves, idealises The Princess 183 the woman into the teacher of things which no knowl- edge can give him, but who always thinks that his man's strength is the natural victor over the woman. Yet, he it is whom Tennyson chooses to put his main conten- tion. Cyril loves Psyche, and begs the Princess to give back the child. He has no theories, no ideal of wo- man's future ; but he stands for Nature and for love. O fair and strong and terrible ! Lioness That with your long locks play the lion's mane ! But Love and Nature, these are two more terrible And stronger. These are the main male opinions about women which Tennyson embodied. That of the Prince remains, and he represents Tennyson's full thought upon the matter. After the battle, the Prince and the Princess are face to face. And the pity of his long illness, in which she has nursed him tenderly, " and hatred of her weakness, blent with shame," and sight of all the lovers in court and grove, and constant usage of the charities of life, and softening sadness, change her whole soul to gentleness and pity, and both at last to love. And when the Prince awakes to consciousness, and thinking her who sits beside him some sweet dream, calls her to fulfil the dream to perfection and kiss him ere he die, she stoops and kisses him, and all Her falser self slipt from her like a robe And left her woman. When in the night he wakes again and hears Ida read- ing a song that strikes the note of that which is to be 184 Tennyson their life, they speak together of all that has been. " She was wrong," she says, " she had failed, had sought less for truth than power in knowledge, but something wild within her breast, A greater than all knowledge, beat her down. For the moment, no doubt — the moment of her pas- sionate yielding — she does not surrender too much. But she surrenders too much if she speaks as a woman for women. And the Prince, with all his views of pure equality, accepts too much of masterhood. There is a certain lordliness in his lecture on the woman and the man which belongs to Tennyson's attitude on the sub- ject, and which makes me dread that Ida in after years lost a good deal of her individuality. This might be a gain for the comfort of the palace, but it would be a loss to womanhood and to the world. But what the Prince says, independent of his attitude of mind, is true, for the most part, to the heart of the question, and remains true, even though fifty years have passed away. But we have now far more data to go upon than Tennyson possessed. The steady work of women dur- ing these fifty years, and the points they have so bravely won, have added element after element to our expe- rience. But all that has been gained has made more plain that The woman's cause is man's ; they rise or sink Together. One is the equal half of the other ; and the halves are The Princess 185 diverse for ever, each complements each ; both united in diversity make the perfect humanity ; their work must be together, in difference. These are the vital truths which Tennyson expresses in the famous lines of the Prince's speech, and they govern, or ought to govern, the whole question of the future position of womanhood in a better society than that in which we live. They do not govern the position or the life of womanhood at present. The prejudices both of men and women are against their full development. Nor do I think that Tennyson himself (save on a wind of prophecy) saw clearly to what conclusions his own views would lead. We could not expect he should, but men and women will in the end grasp with proper largeness of thought what this means : And so these twain, upon the skirts of Time Sit side by side, full summ'd in all their powers, Dispensing harvest, sowing the To-be, Self-reverent each and reverencing each. Distinct in individualities, But like each other ev'n as those who love. These verses assert far more for women than that they should find their only perfect life in marriage and in home ; their only exercise of sacrifice in motherhood, in nursing the sick, in tending on the poor, or their only career in personal devotion to those they love. Tenny- son, sometimes seeing farther, comes back to circle round these things of home alone ; and most men and women, even now, think that these exhaust all the 1 86 Tennyson womanly work of women. It is not so. We have gained a wider view. To be, indeed, a true wife, such as Tennyson has drawn on the lips of the Prince ; or to be a sweet and noble mother, one Not learned, save in gracious household Avays, Not perfect, nay, but full of tender wants. No angel, but a dearer being, all dipt In angel instincts, breathing Paradise, Interpreter between the gods and men. Who look'd all native to her place, and yet On tiptoe seem'd to touch upon a sphere Too gross to tread, and all male minds perforce Sway'd to her from their orbits as they moved And girdled her with music. Happy he. With such a mother ! — to be these noble creatures at home, and to build up children into noble life — this, indeed, is the work of womanhood done not only at home, but for the State and for humanity at large. No higher work in the world exists than that of motherhood, forming children into true and loving men and women. But this does not cover all. In our complex and crowded society, there are thousands of women who have no home, who are not wives and mothers, but who are hungry to become themselves, to realise themselves in work, to live outside of themselves in the life and movement of the whole. These scarcely come into Tennyson's outlook at the end of The Princess. For these, the education in knowledge and the training of their powers to all kinds of work which Ida established in her college are necessary, but with a clear considera- The Princess 187 tion of sexual difference. This work is, however, to be carried out on other principles than those which Ida laid down — in union with man, with as large a training in the just use of the emotions, in the just expansion of the imagination, in a true sight of the beautiful, and in the wise development of the ideal and the spiritual, as in the accurate knowledge of science and history, of law and literature. And then, the work of the world lies open to woman, to do in a different way from man, but with the same ends, and in the same cause — the cause of the happiness, the goodness, and the love of hu- manity. When that is possible — when we shall have applied to all the problems of society the new and as yet unused elements which exist in womanhood — all results will be reached twice as quickly as they are now reached, all human work will be twice as quickly done. And then, perhaps, some new poet will write a new Princess. CHAPTER VII IN MEMORIAM THE history of the writing of In Memoriam is well known. If an immortal fame can comfort Arthur Hallam, who was so soon bereft of the bright- ness of the earth, then he is consoled in his high place for the loss of human life ; for surely while the language of England lasts, so long will In Memoriam be read and Arthur Hallam be remembered. Thirty years ago, I made a pilgrimage to the little church near Clevedon, where the Hallams rest, and saw the grave- yard, the yews, and the marble tablet glimmering in the church. It was then a lonely quiet place, in a furrow of the sandy slopes, not a house standing near it ; and fifty yards from it, but hidden from view, the broad estuary of the Severn filled with the tide. I heard the water wash the feet of the low cliffs as it passed by. Sorrow and death, peace that passeth understanding, the victory of the soul, seemed present with me ; and the murmuring of the Severn became, as I dreamed, the music of eternal love, into whose vast harmonies all our discords are drawn at last. In Memoriam 189 I felt, it seemed, the impression of the place. I knew afterwards that it was the impression of the poem that I gave to the place. And this indeed is the lasting power of In Memoriam. It is a song of victory and life arising out of defeat and death ; of peace which has forgotten doubt ; of joy whose mother was sorrow but who has turned his mother's heart into delight. The conquest of love — the moral triumph of the soul over the worst blows of fate, over the outward forces of Nature, even over its own ill— that is the motive of the poems which endure, which, like the great lighthouses, stand and shine through the storms of time to save and lead into a haven of peace the navies of humanity. AVe are flooded to-day with poems of despair, with verse which boasts that it describes the real when it describes the base, which takes the vulture's pleasure in feeding on the corruption of society, and prophesies, when it lifts its dripping beak from the offal, that to this carcass- complexion the whole of humanity will come at last. Tennyson himself has painted the class : We are men of ruin'd blood, Therefore comes it we are wise ! Virtue ! — to be good and just — Eveiy heart, when sifted well, Is a clot of warmer dust, Mixed with cunning sparks of hell. The art and the temper that produce the poetry of despair and vileness will not last ; and it is a comfort to think of this when we are greatly troubled with the I 90 Tennyson stenches of what they falsely call the real. The poetry of the soul's defeat withers in the mind of the race. The poet himself who writes it withers away. Had In Memoriam been only wailing for loss it would have perished, even if its work had been better than it is ; but since it tells of loss passing into love, since it describes death entering into life, it is sure to live, and would do so even if its work had been less excellent. Of course I do not mean that inartistic work, if its mo- tive be a victorious one, will live. I write of artists and their work, not of those who are not artists. The poetic work of those that are not artists, of whatever temper it be, is bound to perish. But In Memoriam is a work of art, done by a man whose natural gift had been polished by study, and care- fully trained by steady practice till it rejoiced in its own power. Its subject impassioned its writer, and the subject was simple, close to the heart of man. As the poem moved on, the subject expanded, and the sorrow spoken of passed from the particular into the universal. The victory over the evil of sorrow made a similar pas- sage. The poet's personal conquest of pain became the universal conquest of the human race. This expansion of the subject ennobled the poem, and the triumphant close secured and established its nobility. It will last when all its detractors and their criticisms are together dust. It was published in 1850. The collected poems were published in 1842, The Princess in 1847 ; but the sub- In Memoriam igi ject of In Memoriam and the writing of the poem had been kept in Tennyson's mind for seventeen years, from 1833 to 1849, ripening season by season into the full and perfect fruit. This is the way in which Tennyson wrought at his natural gift, and I repeat that it was partly owing to this steady slowness of his that his poetic genius retained to so great an age its clearness, its power, and its fire. It was owing to this also that his gift gained and retained that capacity for beautiful and careful finish v/hich, when the ardour of youth has departed from an artist, is the excellence which makes the work of his maturity delightful. This was in his character. There was that in him from his very birth which made him love to grow and work as slowly as an oak lays fibre to fibre ; as firmly, as steadily, and with as enduring a vitality. His patient work on In Memoriam was of the very essence of the man. And now, how did In Memoriam arise into its form ? When a poet first begins to write, he writes of the motives which have excited his youth, and those motives are born out of his own life, rather than out of the life of the world without him. They are individual, not universal. His boyhood, his youth, his early loves, his pleasures at the university, his classic studies, the charm of the Greek stories ; his first delight in the romantic tale such as that of Arthur, his vacation rambles and the discussions which made them vivid ; the light fancies of youth, the happy pity of sad stories ; the loveliness of Nature round his home, and in the wilder places of the 192 Tennyson mountain and the glen ; the daily life of country folk, seen through the emotions of youthful love ; and now and then such philosophy of life as belongs to the young man who argues round rather than pierces into the great problems, because they have not as yet smitten him to the heart — these are the motives of a poet's youth. Out of this experience or rather this want of experience, this personal play of only personal emotion over circum- stance and over the working of his own soul, the first poems of the artist are born, and they fill his heart to the exclusion of those greater subjects which concern the whole of humanity. The weight and trouble of the world of men, the cry of the questioning soul of humanity, the massive prob- lems of the whole race, have not yet sent their waves of emotion on him with sufficient force to put his individ- uality into the second place. There is no room for these outward and world-wide emotions until the personal emotions of youth are expressed and exhausted by ex- pression. But when these have been expressed (as in the volumes of 1830 and 1833), then the soul is, as it were, empty. And on this void soul, waiting for new thoughts and their emotions, the great trouble of man- kind flows in with a full tide, and brings with it univer- sal tidings, deeper passions, greater ranges of thought than the poet has known as yet. It does more ; it has a distinct action on the soul itself. It not only brings new things from without, but it also awakens within the poet powers of his own as yet unknown by him, as yet In M emonam 193 asleep. They are the powers by which the poet is fitted to deal with the great and universal questions, to answer which constitutes the struggle of mankind. Now and then they lift their head, and appear in the verse, but their time is not yet, and they let fall their head again in slumber. But now, at the inward rush of the vast trouble of the world of man, they spring into full life, and dwell in the place that personal feeling once occu- pied alone. The universal has come, and though the particular is not destroyed, it is absorbed. Into what shape it will first turn itself — whether it will gather its questions and feelings round religion, or social movements, or war, or womanhood, or liberty, or the existence of evil, or the future advent of good — will de- pend on circumstance. The circumstance which settled the first direction of Tennyson towards the universal, which brought the world-question into its special shape for him, was the death of his dearest friend. And the death was so tragic, and the circumstances so special, that it was impossible that the questions roused by it should be only personal. Arthur Hallam was as young as Tennyson ; his powers seemed so exceptional that his father, who was of all literary men the most sober and balanced in his judgments, imagined him capable of the greatest things. It was thought that a splendid future was before him, and his loss seemed to his friends to be a loss to all mankind. The grief of family, of all who loved him, came, in this fashion, to be representative of the sorrow of the whole world. This touched Tennyson 194 Tennyson home, and depth and poignancy were given to it because his friend was not only a friend, but a brother artist. Both were poets, both worked together at poetry, both looked forward to a long life of art together. I do not remember anything like it since the death of Girtin and the silent sorrow of Turner ; but the parallel is a worthy one, it fits at almost every point. Thus the outward impulse came on Tennyson's soul, now discharged of all the gathered subjects of youth, relieved of the merely individual. The vast question of human sorrow for the loss of those who are loved, sor- row as infinite and as varied as love, belonging to all the lovers and friends of the whole world, going back with unremitting force through the whole of time, felt as keenly by those who chipped out the flake of flint as by Tennyson himself — this, in all its universal humanity, was borne in upon him now, and filled his soul. He felt the loss of his friend ; he felt the loss of all the friends of the whole world. This was Tennyson's step into manhood as a poet : and the slow, sustained and yet impassioned march by which his character forced him to advance, made it but natural for him to take seventeen years to realise and embody his progress in a work which is worthy of the time given to it, and which remains the weightiest in thought, the best in form, the most varied in feeling, and the most finished of all his longer poems. Such is the psychical history of this poem, as I con- ceive it, and I think the poem bears out the analysis, In M ernonam 195 even in its arrangement. Before, however, I speak of that arrangement, I wish to dwell on some characteristics of the poem and on some accusations made against it. First, it was begun immediately after the youthful poems, and youth lingers in it in lovely ways. When young Imagination rushes forward in it, he does not appear in his gaiety, in his youthful dress. He is solemnised somewhat by the subject, and wears the noble mask of tragedy. The rush is there, but its swiftness is stately. Moreover, it is quite natural that these passages of youthful fire and glow do not occur in the first part where the personal grief is recent and foremost, but in the second, or rather in the third, when the pain of loss is lessened, and the sweetness of memory and the soothing of faith have discharged bitterness from the soul. I do not know in any of the earlier poems, not even in Maud, anything on a higher range of passionate imagination, and breathing more of youthful ardour weighted with dignity of thought, than a song like this : Wild bird, whose warble, liquid sweet, Rings Eden thro' the budded quicks, O tell me where the senses mix, O tell rae where the passions meet. Whence radiate : fierce extremes employ Thy spirits in the darkening leaf, And in the midmost heart of grief Thy passion clasps a secret joy : 196 Tennyson And I — my harp would prelude woe — I cannot all command the strings ; The glory of the sum of things Will flash along the chords and go. Or, take this other, where the loveliness of Nature is met and received with joy by that receptive spirit of delight in a sensuous impression which a young man feels, and where the depth of the feeling has wrought the short poem into an intensity of unity ; each verse linked, like bell to bell in a chime, to the verse before it, and all swinging into a triumphant close ; swelling as they go from thought to thought, and finally rising from the landscape of earth to the landscape of infinite space — can anything be more impassioned and yet more solemn ? It has the swiftness of youth, and the nobleness of man- hood's sacred joy : Sweet after showers, ambrosial air, That rollest from the gorgeous gloom Of evening over brake and bloom And meadow, slowly breathing bare The round of space, and rapt below Thro' all the dewy-tassell'd wood. And shadowing down the horned flood In ripples, fan my brows and blow The fever from my cheek, and sigh The full new life that feeds thy breath Throughout my frame, till Doubt and Death, 111 brethren, let the fancy fly From belt to belt of crimson seas On leagues of odour streaming far, To where in yonder orient star A hundred spirits whisper " Peace." In Memoriam 197 There are many other passages I might quote in this connection, but these are enough to prove that the ardour of youth is not absent from In Memoriam. Only one thing I add. The passion is not that of love alone, of personal pain or joy alone. It is felt for all humanity, as well as for himself — nay, his self is drowned in the greater emotion. It is a passion also which is not all feeling ; it is deepened by the universal thoughts which are mingled with it ; and when emotion is charged with thought (as the great waters are with salt), it is then strongest, most living, and most worthy of humanity. Nevertheless, the sweetness and nearness of personal feeling is not wanting. This is also felt as one feels it in youth, when tenderness rather than thoughtfulness is first. The loveliest example of this in the poems of 1833 is ; Break, break, break, On thy cold gray stones, O Sea. But the little poem which here follows is not unworthy of this predecessor. I do not even know whether its note is not more delicate and tender ; the wash of the Severn in it is more homelike, more near to the human- ity of sorrow than the desolate dash of the sea. The Danube to the Severn gave The darken'd heart that beat no more ; They laid him by the pleasant shore, And in the hearing of the wave. There twice a day the Severn fills ; The salt sea-water passes by, And hushes half the babbling Wye, And makes a silence in the hills. ig8 Tennyson The Wye is hush'd nor moves along, And hush'd my deepest grief of all, When fill'd with tears that cannot fall, I brim with sorrow drowning song. The tide flows down, the wave again Is vocal in its wooded walls ; My deeper anguish also falls, And I can speak a little then. That is the full pathos of personal sorrow. There is nothing universal in it. It is all youth — and yet how finished is its art ! How delicately the work of Nature without is woven together with the labour of pain within, and how unforgetful is the reader kept, as the verse goes on, of the place where the poet stands, of the grave in which Arthur lies ! Connected with this last, and indeed a part of it which I desire to isolate, is the next point. An objection sim- ilar to that made to Lycidas, is made to In Memoriam. As in Lycidas the grief is lost, as some say, in conven- tional ornament, or, as others say, in the mere making of a poem, so the grief in In Memoriam is lost, we are told, in theology and philosophy. There is some apparent truth in the objection. But first and foremost, the grief is not lost. It appears, as it does not appear in Lycidas. Secondly, we must remember that the poem is the tale of two years and a half, and that the sorrow for his friend passes through this period, and changes its form as time changes all our sorrows. It is full, close, and even over-sentimental in expression at the beginning. It is mingled, in the middle of In Memoriam igg the poem, with the doubts that its suffering brings. It passes into peace and victory at the close. But it is never lost, and it becomes more true to human nature, more gentle, as the poem develops. There are few lyri- cal movements lovelier and tenderer than the great can- zone where Tennyson describes his reading late at night the letters of the dead, and the waking vision of thought, when his soul, touched by his friend's power from the other world, is borne with him into the universe of spirit. That is the voice of true love, infinitely tender, and, while regretful, moved by a nobler friendship than had been of old on earth ; and every one who has loved and lost, and has not yielded to the selfishness of grief, knows that such an hour is deeper, and more tender than tongue can tell. Moreover, we must also remember that the subject has passed, beyond his sorrow for his friend, into consideration of the sorrow of the whole world ; and the universality of the emotion felt increases the intensity of it. We can trace its growth. The first part of the poem which belongs only to his particular sorrow for Arthur is weak in comparison with the last. Yet, when he comes to think of the universal sorrow, it is knit up still with his friend, and the triumph of the whole is also the triumph of his friend. When we compare even that fine passage I have quoted, " The Danube to the Severn gave," with this — " Dear friend, far off, my lost desire " — which now I quote, what a change ! what a difference in the depth and strength of the feeling ! The feeling is still personal, 200 Tennyson but it is also universal. The love which fills it is not less because it mingles the whole universe with his friend. Nay, it is greater, for the love of the whole world, of God and Nature and man, and the joy of love's victory have been added to it : Dear friend, far off, my lost desire. So far, so near in woe and weal ; O loved the most, when most I feel There is a lower and a higher ; Known and unknown ; human, divine ; Sweet human hand and lips and eye ; Dear heavenly friend that canst not die, Mine, mine, for ever, ever mine. Strange friend, past, present, and to be ; Loved deeplier, darklier understood ; Behold, I dream a dream of good, And mingle all the world with thee. Thy voice is on the rolling air ; I hear thee where the waters run ; Thou standest in the rising sun, And in the setting thou art fair. What art thou then ? I cannot guess ; But though I seem in star and flower To feel thee some diffusive power, I do not therefore love thee less : Thy love involves the love before ; My love is vaster passion now ; Tho' mix d with God and Nature thou, I seem to love thee more and more . In Memoriam 201 Far off thou art, but ever nigh ; I have thee still, and I rejoice ; I prosper, circled with thy voice ; I shall not lose thee tho' I die. That is one form of the fervent feeling of Tennyson, and it is worth a hundredfold more than our merely personal sorrows, joys, and loves. The deep and ardent emotion which is awakened by the mightiest and best thoughts, gathering round the great and noble realities which belong to all mankind, and stir eternal yearning and high desire in the heart of man, is worthier to feel, and nobler to celebrate in song, than the fleeting ar- dours of youth which are concerned with ourselves alone, and which imprison us in ourselves. It has been said that Tennyson fails in passion, and when men say that, they mean the embodiment of the passion of love in verse. It is true that he is not capable of describing the wilder, the more sensuous phases of love. The only poem in which he ever tried it is one called Fatima, and it is a great failure. But to say that he is incapable of describing the ardent love of a man for a maid is to forget Maud, and Maud Aot% not stand alone. Nevertheless, his intenser singing belongs to other spheres. The personal loves of earth fade and die, unless they are taken up into wider and higher loves, unless they are expanded to fit into the love of man and the love of God. And Tennyson always, or almost always, lifts them into those loftier regions. This is the full drift of In Afemoriam. 202 Tennyson Moreover, as age grows on us, and youthful ardours fade, love, which was once engaged with persons, and which, in loving persons, learned to know itself and its powers, is content no longer with persons. It desires to expand, it prunes its wings for a larger flight into regions where self-desire is lost. It loves a coun- try and can die for its honour. It loves the great causes which set forward mankind, and in such devo- tion it loves the whole race of man. It loves Nature, not in parts as once in youth, not because it is made to reflect our feelings, but as a whole and for itself alone. It loves the great ideas — truth, justice, honour, purity, uprightness, the liberty and duties of man, the union of all mankind in spirit and in truth. It loves, finally, God, in whom all Nature and man are contained and loved, in whom all the great ideas and truths are em- bodied, from whom they flow and to whom they return, bringing with them the men and women to whom they have been given. It loves, thus, the whole universe. And the emotion which these vaster loves awaken is deeper, stronger, and more noble than that which is stirred by the personal loves of youth. It is enduring ; it is coeval with God Himself ; and man only reaches his true destiny when he is thrilled through and through with its powers. These are the loves which Tennyson, more than any other poet of this century, felt and sang. For these he wrote with a greater depth of feeling than other men. It is in celebrating these diviner forms of love, as I might show in poem after poem, that he writes In Memoriam 203 with the greatest glow and fire ; and it is for this that humanity, as it grows into capacity for the more immor- tal affections, will always honour him. This, too, was in his character. It was one of the roots of the man. The tendency, the conduct, the upbuilding, the power, and the life of his poetry find in this their best expla- nation ; nor is there any better example than In Memo- riam of this expansion of love from the particular to the universal, or of the profound ardour with which he made its song. It remains to say something of the manner in which Tennyson uses and describes Nature in In Memoriam. The scenery of the poem is partly of the downs and of the sea in the distance ; partly of a woodland country made vocal by a brook ; and sometimes of a garden full of flowers and a lawn with far-branching trees, elm, beech, and sycamore. Two parts of England contribute their landscape to the verse, for in the midst of the poem Tennyson changes his dwelling-place ; but the scenery of the first part is often recollected and described in the second. Nature is used in diverse ways. Sometimes the land- scape is taken up by the poet into his own being spirit- ualised therein, and made by stress of passion to image the movement of his inner life. Then the outward scene and the inward feeling are woven together moment by moment with an intensity which makes them one. And this is done in an accumulative fashion. Vision 204 Tennyson after vision of Nature, each of a greater beauty and sentiment than its predecessor, succeed one another, and each of them is fitted to a corresponding exaltation of the emotions of the soul. There is no better example of this method than the song I have elsewhere quoted : Sweet after showers, ambrosial air. Nor is the conclusion of xcv. — that full-throated pas- sage about the growing dawn and the rising wind — in- ferior in this intense clasping together of Nature and the soul, or in this accumulating power. Another example of the same method is to be found in the Hesper-Phosphor poem (cxxi.). This, the form of which is different from the other examples of the same method, is the most finished piece of conscious art in In Memo- riam. Two general aspects of Nature under the same star — the evening and the morning star — are taken to represent the two positions of his soul, in the past and in the present. Both these aspects are made alive by the simple doings of human life that naturally belong to the waking of the world from rest, and the going of the world to rest. Then both, since Hesper and Phosphor are the same, since the morning brings the evening in its arms, since the evening bears within it the waking of the dawn, are smitten together, like his past and present, into one. Another method describes at some length a single aspect of Nature, and then at the end throws back on this special aspect the mood of his mind. In these In Memoriam 205 poems we have the finest descriptions of Nature in In Memoriam ; and frequently in two adjacent poems two opposed moods of Nature are represented in contrast one with another. The calm of the whole world in the morning hour (xi.) is set over against the tempest which the evening has brought upon the same landscape (xv.). They image his calm despair and wild unrest, and per- haps created them ; for Nature often makes our passions and then mirrors them. No calm was ever deeper in verse than it is on that high wold in the morning, and no storm wilder than it is on the same wold in the evening ; and Tennyson takes the greatest pains to describe the vastness of the out- spread landscape, under both these moods of Nature. In the first he sees the moor at his feet, the dews on the furze, the gossamers that tremble not, so still is the air, but which twinkle in the lifting light of morning. Then he raises his eyes, and that far landscape to which Shelley or Wordsworth would have allotted twenty or thirty lines, is done in four : Calm and still light on yon great plain That sweeps with all its autumn bowers. And crowded farms and lessening towers, To mingle with the bounding main. This is Tennyson's concentrated manner, and the landscape seems all the larger from the previous de- scription of the small space of ground on which he is standing. I do not say that it is better than the expan- sive landscapes of Shelley or Wordsworth, but it is done 2o6 Tennyson in a different way, and with its own distinct emotion. We may set beside it another description of calm in the epilogue where the landscape is equally far and vast — a moonlight vision alive with streaming cloud and with the moving of the moon all the night long — a most beau- tiful thing, drenched with the silent loveliness of the universe. Dumb is that tower that spake so loud, And high in heaven the streaming cloud, And on the downs a rising fire : And rise, O moon, from yonder down, Till over down and over dale All night the shining vapour sail And pass the silent-lighted town. The white-faced halls, the glancing rills. And catch at every mountain head. And o'er the friths that branch and spread Their sleeping silver through the hills. The landscape is as far as it is fair, and it is immedi- ately taken up, in accordance with the first method of which I have spoken, into his own soul, into his blessing on the bridal pair ; and then inwoven with the com- ing child, and with the race of man. We might now think that this poet of wide distances would not be able to picture the quiet of a narrow and enclosed space ; of a lawn and garden on a summer evening. But he does this with equal force and beauty. The poem (xcv.) beginning — In Memoriam 207 By night we linger'd on the lawn, breathes with the peace of all the country-homes of Eng- land, and, even more, with the happy stillness of human hearts, of one another sure. The storms described in In Memoriam are done in the same way as these images of calm. The tempest of the fifteenth section begins with what is close at hand — the wood by which he stands at sunset — The last red leaf is whirl'd away. The rooks are blown about the skies. And then, after that last admirable line which fills the whole sky with the gale, he lifts his eyes, as before, and we see with him the whole world below, painted also in four lines — the forest, the waters, the meadows, struck out, each in one word ; and the wildness of the wind and the width of the landscape given, as Turner would have given them, by the low shaft of storm-shaken sun- light dashed from the west right across to the east — The forest crack'd, the waters curl'd, The cattle huddled on the lea ; And wildly dash'd on tower and tree The sunbeam strikes along the world. Lastly, to heighten the impression of tempest, to show the power it will have when the night is come, to add a far horizon to the solemn world — he paints the rising wrath of the storm in the cloud above the ocean rim, all aflame with warlike sunset. 2o8 Tennyson That rises upwards always higher. And onward drags a labouring breast, And topples round the dreary west, A looming bastion fringed with fire. It is well done, but whosoever reads the whole will feel that the storm of the human heart is higher than the storm of Nature. Tennyson always loved tempestuous days, and this general description of storm is followed by many others of fierce weather. In Ixxii. the whole of the day is wild, but here he dwells on the small and particular effects caused by the wind. The blasts " blow the poplar white " ; the " rose pulls sideways " ; the daisy " closes her crimsom fringes to the shower"; the "burthened brows " of the day — that is, the looming clouds — pour forth winds That whirl the ungarner'd sheaf afar, And sow the sky with flying boughs. Nor is the winter gale and the wintry world neglected. Stanza evil, opens with the sunset and the " purple-frosty bank of vapour " on the horizon, and then the north-east wind comes with the night. Its fierceness, keenness, iron-heartedness, its savage noise, the merciless weather of it, pass from the woods out to the sea, and the moon hangs hard-edged over the passing squalls of snow. The use of rough vowels, of words that hiss and clang, and smite the ear, heightens the impression. In Memoriam 209 Fiercely flies The blast of North and East, and ice Makes daggers at the sharpeii'd eaves, And bristles all the brakes and thorns To yon hard crescent, as she hangs Above the wood which grides and clangs Its leafless ribs and iron horns Together, in the drifts that pass To darken on the rolling brine That breaks the coast. The hand that wrought this winter landscape is equally cunning in summer and spring. The summer garden and the summer lawn of Ixxxix. are steeped in heat and light. The lines " Immantled in ambrosial dark," " The landscape winking thro' the heat," hold in them alike the shade and blaze of summer days ; and the joyous sound of the scythe in early morn is full of the sentiment of summer — O sound to rout the brood of cares. The sweep of scythe in morning dew. The gust that round the garden flew. And tumbled half the mellowing pears ! I give one more example for the brief perfection of the picture : When summer's hourly-mellowing change May breathe, with many roses sweet, Upon the thousand waves of wheat That ripple round the lonely grange. 2IO Tennyson As to spring, the poem is full of its wakeful charm, of its glad beginnings, " when flower is feeling after flower." The rosy plumelets that tuft the larch, the native hazels tassel-hung, the living smoke of the yew, the little speedwell's darling blue, the laburnum's dropping-wells of fire, the sea-blue bird of March flitting underneath the barren bush, the low love-language of the dove, the rare piping of the mounted thrush, are all phrases which tell how closely he watched her wakening ; and when his heart is happy at the end of his poem, he breaks into one of the loveliest songs of spring that Eng- lish poetry has ever made. Now fades the last long streak of snow, Now burgeons every maze of quick About the flowering squares, and thick By ashen roots the violets blow. I need not quote the rest, but it is lovely throughout. Almost all the joys of spring, her scenery and its in- dwellers, her earth, and sky, and sea, and at last the springtide of his own heart, are vocal in its feeling and its art. Finally, there is the landscape of memory — another method of description, in which many happy and different aspects of Nature are gathered together, some described in two lines, some even flashed forth in half a line, and every one of them humanised by tender feeling In Memoriam 21 1 — that feeling through recollection of Nature and his friend together which makes for every landscape its own ethereal atmosphere, half of soft air and half of soft emotion. Of this kind of natural description, so difficult, so rarely done well, so exquisite when it is at the same time brief and full, the two poems c. and ci. are most lovely and delicate examples, and every one who cares for poetry should possess them in his soul. Many also are the scattered phrases about the natural world which might be collected for their subtle simplicity, beauty, and truth ; but I close this praise of the poet with only one, in which man and Nature are inwoven, and the way he wrote his poem enshrined : Short swallow-flights of song, that dip Their wings in tears, and skim away. CHAPTER VIII IN MEMORIAM (Continued) ITS STRUCTURE THE question of this Chapter is — How was In Me- moriam shaped ? What is the conduct of the poem ? It was shaped into the continuous story of two years and a half ; not a story of events but the story of the voyage of a soul. First, the hurricane of sorrow came ; then the fierceness of the storm grew less, but left the sea tormented and the ship of the soul tossing from wave to wave, from question to question. At last there was calm, and the soul rested ; and then a clear wind arose in sunny skies, and the ship flew forward, all the sails set to victory, into a harbour of peace. But better words than these to describe the history of In Memoriam are those of the Psalm, said of those who go down into the deep : " They go up to the heavens, and down again to the depth ; their soul melteth away for very trouble. They reel to and fro and stagger like a drunken man, and are at their wits' end. So they cry unto the Lord 212 In Memoriam 213 in their trouble, and He delivereth them out of their dis- tress. He maketh the storm a calm, so that the waves thereof are still. Then are they glad because they are at rest : so He bringeth them to the haven where they would be." The time of this story is well marked, and it is the first thing its reader should understand. It outlines the map of the poem. It begins in September, 1833, when Tenny- son hears of his friend's death at Vienna. It is autumn ; the leaves are reddening to their fall, the chestnut is pattering to the ground, as the poet waits for the body of his friend. This autumn closes with a great storm : To-night the winds begin to rise, And roar from yonder dripping day, The last red leaf is whirl'd away, The rooks are blown about the skies. Then the twenty-eighth, twenty-ninth, and thirtieth sections describe the first Christmas after the death of Arthur. In the thirty-eighth, the spring of 1834 has come, and in the forty-eighth the swallows are flying over the waters. The seventy-second records the anni- versary of his friend's death, September, 1834. One year has passed by. The Christmas of 1834 is recorded in the seventy- eighth, and the spring of 1835 arrives in the eighty-third sections. Full summer is with us in the eighty-ninth and the ninety-iifth ; and in the ninety-ninth the day of his friend's death dawns after storm in balm and peace. A second year has gone by, September, 1835. 214 Tennyson Another Christmas comes with the hundred and third section, and at the hundred and fourteenth these notes of time close with the April of 1836. The poem lasts, then, just two years and seven months. The epithala- mium at the end, the celebration of his sister's marriage- day, belongs to 1842 ; and the prologue to the poem was written last of all, and is dated 1849. And now, to illustrate the progress of the soul from sorrow to peace, I will take the three main marks of time : the anniversaries of the death of his friend, the Christmastides, the advents of spring, and dwell on the changes of mind displayed in the record of them. When Tennyson hears of Arthur's death (to take the death- days first) grief is all ; it drowns the world ; Nature seems purposeless, " a hollow form with empty hands " ; the sullen, changeless yew-tree symbolises the hardness of his heart. When the anniversary of the death comes the memory of it is still miserable. That hour sicken'd every living bloom And blurr'd the splendour of the sun. It was a Day mark'd as with some hideous crime, When the dark hand struck down thro' time And cancell'd nature's best — a day " to hide its shame beneath the ground." Thus even when a year has gone by the wrathfulness of sorrow is still deep. As yet there is no forgiveness of pain and no peace (Ixxii.). In Memoriam 215 When the next anniversary dawns (xcix.) the tone is changed ; the birds are singing, the meadows breathe softly of the past, the woodlands are holy to the dead ; there has been storm, but the breath of the day is now balmy, and the swollen brook murmurs a song " that sHghts the coming care." But the greatest change is that he thinks less of his own pain and more of the pain of mankind. The dim, sweet dawn awakens to myriads on the earth memories of death, and he feels that he is the comrade of all these mourners : O wheresoever those may be, Betwixt the slumber of the poles. To-day they count as kindred souls ; They know me not, but mourn with me. This is the progress at these spaces of time. But if we wish to test it in a better way, we should choose, not the anniversaries of death when the poet is sure to have his sorrow driven home to him, but other times when the mind is freed from so close a pressure of memory. I take now the three Christmas Days. When the bells of the first Christmas Eve (xxviii.) ring out peace and goodwill, he remembers that he had almost wished to die in his grief before he heard them, but they control his spirit with a touch of joy ; and though he scarce dare keep his Christmas Eve, so deep is regret, yet let me give, he cries, their due to ancient use and custom, though they too die. But this bitterness perishes next day. He keeps his Christmas and remembers his friend who was with him the year 2i6 Tennyson before. A gentler feeling creeps into his heart. The dead rest, he says, their sleep is sweet ; and then the first prophecy in the poem of the resurrection of the soul from the sorrow of loss is made, and the verse lifts to the thought : Our voices took a higher range ; Once more we sang — ' ' They do not die Nor lose their mortal sympathy Nor change to us, although they change ; " Rapt from the fickle and the frail With gather'd power, yet the same, Pierces the keen seraphic flame From orb to orb, from veil to veil. " Rise, happy morn, rise, holy morn, Draw forth the cheerful day from night ; O father, touch the east, and light The light that shone when Hope was born. A year passes, another Christmas comes (Ixxviii.). The snow was silent, the day was calm, and the sense of something for ever gone brooded over all Nature ; but this sense of loss was no longer stormy with passion of grief but quiet like the day. They played, he says, their ancient games, but none showed one token of distress ; no tears fell. " O," he cries, O last regret, regret can die 1 No — mixt with all this mystic frame, Her deep relations are the same, But with long use her tears are dry. This is not victory, and the grief is still only personal. The poet has not escaped from himself, and the year. In Memoriam 217 which has been spent in a half-intellectual analysis of doubts and the replies of the understanding to them, has not brought peace to the life of the soul. Everything is changed at the next Christmas (civ.-cvi.). He hears the bells again, but he has left the old home for another ; and the change of place has broken, like the growth of time, the bond of dying use. He holds the night of Christmas Eve solemn to the past, but as it falls, he feels that the merely personal is no more. He sees the stars rise, and the thought of the great course of time moving on to good for all the world, of the sum- mer of mankind that sleeps in the winter seeds, enters his heart. The universal has come. No dance, no motion, save alone What lightens in the lucid east Of rising worlds by yonder wood. Long sleeps the summer in the seed ; Run out your measured arcs, and lead The closing cycle rich in good. The full significance of this great change of temper is seen in the next song, which celebrates the incoming of the new year : Ring out, wild bells, to the wild sky ; a poem all men know. It bids the past die, and the present and future live. The sound of the bells is happy ; they ring out all evil, and ring in all good. They ring out the grief that sapped his mind ; they 2i8 Tennyson ring out his mournful rhymes, but they ring in the fuller minstrel who sings of the world that is to be, of the Christ who comes again. The personal has wholly perished. His heart is full of all mankind. His own victory over sorrow has taught him the victory over sorrow that awaits the race, and the triumph of the hour sounds nobly in the noble verse. Once more, take the coming of the three springtides. There is some soothing thought in the verses that describe the spring of 1834 (xxxviii.). Six months have passed since Arthur's death, and he thinks that his friend may know that he has sung of his goodness. Yet though he has some comfort, he has no delight : No joy the blowing season gives, The herald melodies of spring. But in the songs I love to sing A doubtful gleam of solace lives. When, however, the spring of 1835 arrives (Ixxxiii.) his temper is no longer retrospective. Sorrow is with him still, but he prophesies a new time, when his heart will be filled with the joy of a spiritual spring, and his soul sing of its resurrection. " O sweet new year, why dost thou linger, what trouble can live in April days ? " Bring orchis, bring the foxglove spire, The little speedwell's darling blue, Deep tulips dash'd with fiery dew, Laburnums, dropping- wells of fire. O thou, new-year, delaying long, Delayest the sorrow in my blood. That longs to burst a frozen bud And flood a fresher throat with song. In Memoriam 219 And then, last of all, in the spring of 1836 (cxv., cxvi.) regret has wholly died. The re-orient life of the world is the symbol of the departure of the wintry grief that looks back to a friendship that seemed lost, and symbol also of the gain of the new friendship that is to be. His friend's face shines on him while he muses alone ; the dear voice speaks to him. "O days and hours," he cries, " your work is this " — To hold me from my proper place, A little while from his embrace, For fuller gain of after bliss ; That out of distance might ensue Desire of nearness doubly sweet ; And unto meeting, when we meet, Delight a hundredfold accrue. These contrasts are enough to mark out clearly, not only that In Metnoriam is the history of a soul continued from point to point of change during nearly three years, but also that it is the history of a soul in progress from darkness to light, from the selfishness to the unselfishness of sorrow ; from despair of God and man to faith in both ; and, as a personal matter, from the thought that friendship was utterly lost in death to the thought that friendship was gained through death at a higher level of love and with a deeper union. I will sketch this progress also. The first part of the poem is entirely personal to himself and his friend. It 220 Tennyson records the several phases of sorrow — sullen hopeless- ness, wild unrest, calm despair, tender tears, the woes of memory and association. The end of this period comes in the hidden hope which arises on Christmas Day, and which is followed by those lovely verses about Lazarus and Mary (xxxi., ii.), in which the hope of the life to come and the peace of love begin to dawn upon his heart. Then follows that transition time which interests the most those who care for intellectual analy- sis. It interests me therefore the least of all. It is the least poetical, the least imaginative, the least instinct with beauty and feeling. And Tennyson, while he records the various movements of his mind in it, does not himself think much of them, when he escapes from them. During this passage of thinking, which lasts about a year and a half, various arguments concerning immortality, for and against, are put, and answers at- tempted to them : mood after mood of the questioning soul is represented, some bright, some dark, half doubt, half faith ; some of wonder whether the living shall have life, others of wonder if the dead be alive ; and, if so, of what kind is their life, and whether it touches ours at all, — a long period of argumentative question- ing, useless for any conclusion, but useful so far that the soul sees at last that the problem of sorrow and of the future life cannot be personally solved in the realm of argument. Then comes the crisis, and the end of all the thought, of all the doubt — so far as he has gone — in that long and famous stanza (Ixxxv.) beginning : In Memoriam 221 This truth came borne with bier and pall, I felt it when I sorrow'd most ; 'T is better to have loved and lost Than never to have loved at all. It gathers together all that has past. It establishes his belief that his friend is alive, and that his friend's being is working in his own ; that there- fore he has now sufficient comfort to live again in other men, to remember the mighty hopes that make us men. It is the beginning of a new departure, and is followed at once by the lovely verses, " Sweet after showers, ambrosial air," in which all Nature leads to heavenly peace. Then through recalling what his friend was, he wishes to see him as he is. " Come back to me," he cries, " come as thou art," and he begins to realise that the dead belong to our life, till (xcv.) the splendour of that truth is borne in upon him, and Tennyson gives his full power to its expression. This is a sun-risen piece of work — the evening, and the summer calm upon the lawn, the night when he is left alone, the hunger at his heart for union, the reading of the letters, and at last the passionate intermingling with the living soul of the dead in waking trance ; the momen- tary doubt when the exaltation died, and then the prophecy of the victory, of light and life at hand for him in the coming of the dawn. Here is the passage ; it is the embodiment of the second crisis in this history of the soul : 222 Tennyson So word by word, and line by line, The dead man touch'd me from the past, And all at once it seem'd at last The living soul was flash'd on mine. And mine in this was wound, and whirl'd About empyreal heights of thought, And came on that which is, and caught The deep pulsations of the world, Ionian music measuring out The steps of Time — the shocks of Chance — The blows of Death. At length, my trance Was cancell'd, stricken thro' with doubt. Vague words ! but ah, how hard to frame In matter-moulded forms of speech. Or ev'n for intellect to reach Thro' memory that which I became : Till now the doubtful dusk reveal'd The knolls once more where, couch'd at ease. The white kine glimmer'd, and the trees Laid their dark arms about the field : And suck'd from out the distant gloom A breeze began to tremble o'er The large leaves of the sycamore, And fluctuate all the still perfume, And gathering freshlier overhead, Rock'd the full-foliaged elms, and swung The heavy-folded rose, and flung The lilies to and fro, and said " The dawn, the dawn," and died away ; And East and West, without a breath, Mixt their dim lights, like life and death. To broaden into boundless day. In Memoriam 223 Thus the " spectres of the mind " are laid. In- deed, these questionings of the understanding on sub- jects beyond its powers, and over which men and women worry themselves into a prolonged infancy of restlessness or a senility of pride, are mere phantasms which the intellect creates in its vanity with which to trouble love. There are only two ways of getting rid of them — one is the way that Tennyson pictures in his own fashion in the rest of In Memo7-iam — the way of love and of faith following on love — and all may read it there, expressed in pure art, and in a series of short poems which are as lovely in form as they are in feeling, as full of the higher human passion as they are of an exquisite sentiment for the beauty of Na- ture, and so closely knit together by spiritual joy that they — rising incessantly from point to point of universal love — form a single poem. It is the triumphal march of Love. It is also a triumph of art. The other way of getting rid of these questionings of the understanding concerning those things which it never can prove is to entirely empty the mind of them, abandon all care for anything beyond this present world. It is a way many take, and it has its advantages. It sets the mind free to give itself wholly to the practical busi- ness, as it is called, of life. But it has also a disad- vantage which may be excessively unpractical. It leaves the soul empty of the ideas which carry a man and his work beyond this world, and which link all the history and end of mankind to a wider history, and to 224 Tennyson an eternal life. It leaves personal love forlorn, and human love for all men in the arms of death. The his- tory of the universal love of man is made by it a history of universal death. Many persons stand that easily. It does not trouble them, but I do not know any poet, even the most de- spairing, who does not at times soar above it or regret it. At least, Tennyson could not endure it, and he was never satisfied till he had left it behind him. " Power was with me," he cries, " in the night " ; and in the rush of love by which he clasped to his spirit the living being of his dead friend, faith in life filled his heart. " I cannot understand," he said, " but I love." This in the beginning of his victory ; and as love creates life and joy wheresoever it moves, all things change now to the poet. The whole of Nature breathes and thrills of his friend ; every memory of him, while they walked amidst her beauty, is happy. No gray old grange, or lonely fold, Or low morass and whispering reed, Or simple stile from mead to mead, Or sheep-walk up the windy wold ; Nor hoary knoll of ash or haw That hears the latest linnet trill, Nor quarry trench'd along the hill, And haunted by the wrangling daw ; Nor runlet trickling from the rock ; Nor pastoral rivulet that swerves To left and right thro' meadowy curves, That feed the mothers of the flock ; In Memoriam 225 But each has pleased a kindred eye, And each reflects a kindlier day ; And leaving these, to pass away, I think once more he seems to die. All humanity also opens before him, filled with hopes that will not shame themselves. It is here that " Ring out wild bells " comes into the poem, " Ring out the thousand wars of old, ring in the thousand years of peace " ; and with this universal hope, impulse to make his sorrow into love for man deepens his heart. " I will not shut me from my kind," he sings, " nor feed with sighs the passing wind." Then, that he may know how he ought to live for man, he draws, in a succession of short poems, the picture of his friend's character and of how he would have lived for the race. And out of it all arises this — That knowledge is needed to save the world from its outward and inward pain, but that knowledge is not enough. Wisdom, such as Arthur had, must be added to knowledge, and must rule it ; and wisdom is of things that Love knows, but that knowledge cannot know. " Come then, my friend, enter into me ; quicken me with this wisdom of thine ; let love be all in all in me. I could not find God alive, nor my friend, in the questionings of the understanding, but now I love and I have found them both — found God, and my friend in God. And with them I have found life, life for myself and life for all my brother men. I see the progress of the world as I have seen my own progress ; I see the working of love in the evolution of mankind ; I see our- 226 Tennyson selves labouring on, and our labour useful and lovely when it is for others ; and, lastly, I see the great labour of God's love underlying all and moving to a perfect close." And all, as in some piece of art, Is toil co-operant to an end. And the conclusion that sums the whole is a solemn prayer to God that all the world may conquer, as he has conquered, the besieging years, and the powers of sorrow. O living will, that shalt endiire When all that seems shall suffer shock, Rise in the spiritual rock, Flow thro' our deeds and make them pure, That we may lift from out the dust A voice as unto him that hears, A cry above the conquer'd years To one that with us works, and trust. With faith that comes of self-control. The truths that never can be proved Until we close with all we loved. And all we (low from, soul in soul. Nine years after Arthur Hallam's death, Tennyson's sister was married, and he writes her marriage song as the epilogue to his poem. We see then what was his temper of mind in 1842. Had he gone back, had he lost the fruits of the victory he had won ? Love is not less, he says, but more. It is solid-set like a statue ; it In Memoriam 227 is moulded into calm of soul, all passion spent, and he has himself grown into something greater than before ; so that his songs of dead regret seem " echoes out of weaker times." It is not that he loves his friend less, but that his friend is with him so closely, in so vivid a life and with so great a power — being as it were a part of God and of the life of God in him — that only joy remains. Even as he sits at the wedding-feast, he feels Arthur with them, wishing joy. And then, as before, he passes from the personal, from the peace of home and its shel- ter, to think of the greater world of man, of the nobler race which God is making out of ours. He retires when night falls, and looks out on the skies as the moon rises. " Touch with thy shade and splendour," he cries, the bridal doors ; let a soul from their marriage draw from out the vast, and strike his being into bounds, and be a closer link betwixt us and the crowning race, the higher humanity to be, of which my friend (and he sweeps back, enamoured of unity like a poet, to the first subject of In Memoriam) was a noble type — the race to the making of which God is moving forward the whole crea- tion. Thus he ends with the universal, with the reitera- tion of the victory of man over pain in the eternity of the love of God : That God, which ever lives and loves, One God, one law, one element. And one far-off divine event. To which the whole creation moves. 2 28 Tennyson Seven years then passed by, during which Tennyson still revised his poem, during which his spirit was con- tinually kept close to the conclusions of faith and hope and love, and of love the greatest of these three, to which he had come in In Memoriam. How would he feel towards these when so long a term of years had come to an end ? We have an answer to that question in the prologue to the poem written in 1849. Every conclusion he had come to is confirmed and re-expressed in that profound and religious psalm. All that he loved, hopqd for, and believed, is there laid in the hands, held in the grace, and enshrined in the spirit of Him who is " Immortal Love." CHAPTER IX " MAUD " AND THE WAR-POEMS THE main point concerning Tennyson himself on which I dwelt in the last chapter was that he had freed himself in that poem from the merely per- sonal. He has passed in In Memoriam from the particu- lar to the universal. Before he had finished that poem, the pain of the world of man had flowed into his soul. He had reached full manhood in his art. From this time forth then, from 1850, when Tennyson was just over forty years of age, a vaster emotion belongs to his poetry, the solemn swell of the passion of mankind ; yet the poetry does not lose, when he desires it, its happy brightness. The idyll of The Brook, published along with Maud, is as gay as it is gentle. Then, too, though his poetry has thus more than before to do with the larger life of man, he can still see Nature with the keen sight and enjoyment of youth. Moreover, he can still " follow the Gleam," still breathe with ease the ideal air, though his experience has been sad, though maturer years have led him to keep closer in his work to the facts of real life. 229 230 Tennyson His poetry has certainly lost some of the animation, opulence, unconsciousness in singing, which are qualities of youth — of which qualities, however, he seemed to have less than other poets, because graver qualities, un- usual in youth, balanced them ; but it has gained more character ; it knows itself better ; it has more of the wisdom of life in it — and yet it has not lost passion. Nay, that is more profound ; there is a greater general intensity of feeling on subjects worthy of deep regard. Moreover, the same width and depth of feeling with which he wrote about religion in In Memoriam now extended itself over the movements of the world. He is in closer sympathy with the life of England at home and abroad. The stories of the joys and sorrows of men and women which he took as subjects in 1842 {Dora and the rest) are now continued, but the colours in which he paints them are fuller and deeper in hue, and they are also more various. He writes of the farmer, the sailor, the city clerk, the parson and lawyer and squire. Enoch Arden, Aylmer's Field, Sea Dreams, The Brook, The Grandmother, The Northern Farmer, The Sailor Boy prove with what variety and power and charm he wrought at this vein, and he loved to work in it to the very end. But it was not only English life at home which en- gaged him. He followed up that life abroad. Rumours of war and war itself, after 1850, stirred his heart. The patriotic spirit which he felt so strongly all his life was now awakened, first by the threatening aspect of France, " Maud " and the War-Poems 23 1 then by the death of the Duke of Wellington, and then by the Crimean war. Three short poems, written in 1852, and published in the newspapers, belong to the French menace : Britons, Guard your Own ! The Third of February ! and Hands all round ; God the tyrant's cause confound! They are sturdy, full-bodied things, and The Third of February maintained against our shameless alliance with the Man of December the moral censure of England on his murderous work : What ! have we fought for Freedom from our prime, At last to dodge and palter with a public crime ? We are grateful to Tennyson for these words, though afterwards he seemed to be a partisan of the war in which the Third Napoleon became the comrade in arms of England. But we may pardon him for that, for it was his long hatred of Russia for her bloody work in Poland which was at the root of his approval of the Crimean war. This patriotism had soon a noble subject in the praise of the great Duke. Tennyson issued his Ode on the day of Wellington's burial, and republished it a year after with many notable changes. This is one of his finest poems. It was fitting that the foremost man in England, who had worn his honours with a quiet sim- plicity for so many years in the " fierce light " which shines on a world-wide fame, and in whom the light never found anything mean or fearful, should, after his death, receive this great and impassioned tribute. What he did in politics was always questionable. He was 232 Tennyson nothing of a statesman, as Tennyson calls him. He proved his inability when he was called to the Premier- ship. Then he was first arrogant, and afterwards per- plexed by the mischief he wrought. Indeed, he was profoundly ignorant of England ; but, when he found out his ignorance, he had the good sense of a great general. He knew when to retreat, and he retreated, even though his retreat had the appearance of a flight. He stood " four-square to all the winds that blew," but when all the winds became one wind, he opened the doors to it and bade the Crown and his peers give way. This was the wisest thing he did in his old age, and it is somewhat characteristic of Tennyson that, except in one line, " rich in saving common sense," he takes no notice of it at all. " Let all England mourn her greatest son, let all England thank God for him, and bury him with honour upon honour " — that is the motive of the beginning of the poem ; and it is worthy to be felt by a poet and by a nation. Magnanimity and magnificence, great- mindedness and great-doing, are the life-blood of a people. To celebrate them with a lavish splendour when he who embodied them in life is dead, is a lesson in a people's education. Then Tennyson passes to the Duke's glory in war, and perhaps in all commemora- tive odes there is nothing finer than his imagination of Nelson waking from his grave in St. Paul's and wonder- ing who was coming, with this national mourning, to lie beside him : " Maud " and the War-Poems 233 " Who is he that cometh, like an honour'd guest, With banner and with music, with soldier and with priest, With a nation weeping, and breaking on my rest ? " Mighty Seaman, this is he Was great by land as thou by sea. This is he that far away Against the myriads of Assaye Clash'd with his fiery few and won ; and the poet, starting from this early battle, sketches with rapid and clear pencil the great wars till the day of Waterloo. I wish the division of the poem (vii.) begin- ning— A people's voice ! we are a people yet — were excluded from the poem. But that would be to wish away one of Tennyson's most characteristic utter- ances as a patriot. Nevertheless, it is too exclusively English, too controversial, too much an attack on France, too contemptuous of the people whom he sees only as the mob ; too fond of the force of great men to the ex- clusion of the force of the collective movements of the nation. A great artist should not overstep so much the limits of temperance ; or, to put this otherwise, he should not lose his sympathy with the whole of humanity in his sympathy with his own country. This is, however, as great a poem as the character was which it celebrated. The metrical movement rushes on where it ought to rush, delays where it 2 34 Tennyson ought to delay. Were the poem set by Handel, its rhythmical movements could scarcely be more fit from point to point to the things spoken off, more full of stately, happy changes. Moreover, the conduct of the piece is excellent. It swells upwards in fuller har- mony and growing thought till it reaches its climax in the division (vi.) about Nelson and Wellington. Then it slowly passes downwards in solemn strains like a storm dying in the sky, and at the end closes in soft spiritual passages of ethereal sound, like the lovely clouds about the setting sun when the peace of evening has fallen on a tempestuous day. Its conduct is then the conduct of one form of the true lyric, that whose climax is in the midst, and not at the close. During the years which followed this poem Tennyson's mind was kept close to the subject of war, though his dislike to France had to be placed in abeyance, for these were the years of the Crimean war. In 1854 the news of the splendid and foolish charge of the Light Brigade reached the country, and set it all on fire. When it was made, and a petulant mistake had all but annihilated the Brigade, we forgot the folly in the glory of those who rode so steadily to all but certain death. Steady obedi- ence, cool self-sacrifice, disbelief in the impossible, courage which rises higher the nearer death is at hand, are some of the things which have made England. They made her glory in this deed of war. It was more the glory of the troopers than of the leader, and Tenny- son has felt that throughout his song. And since he felt " Maud" and the War-Poems 235 it, I wish that he had celebrated Inkerman rather than this isolated and splendid blunder. Nevertheless, it was a fine thing done in the face of the whole world, and it has handed down so great a tradition of mortal courage and magnificence that it was well worthy of song, and Tennyson could hardly help taking it as a poetic theme. He did it well ; but the weakness inherent in the subject ("some one had blundered ") prevented him from doing it very well. In after years he took another subject of the same kind, and out of the same battle — The Charge of the Heavy Brigade at Balaclava. The poem has its own force, but it is too like its predecessor. It first appeared in 1882, and was published with a prologue and epilogue in 1885. The prologue is addressed to General Hamley, and contains a charming description of the view from his Sussex home, and an allusion to the glory of the war in Egypt against Arabi. But it is the epilogue which it is right to notice in this place, for it contains his defence of his war-poems against Irene, who stands, I suppose, for Peace, but who is with all a poet's love of the personal, made into a delightful girl. You wrong me, passionate little friend. I would that wars should cease, I would the globe from end to end Might sow and reap in peace. Yes, Tennyson loved peace, and has sung of it with grace and loveliness ; but the objection men have taken to the praise of war in Maud is none the less. War is 236 Tennyson held in Maud to be the proper cure for the evils of peace, and it is not a cure, but an additional disease. In this defence also, he still clings to the notion that Trade, "with kindly links of gold," may refrain the Powers from war, when Trade, as at present conducted, is the most fruitful cause of war. Moreover, he sees, in this defence, no way of making true peace but fighting, meeting force by force. A poet might have thought of other ways ; yet it was scarcely possible that Tennyson, with his character, should have seen those other ways. We must not expect from a man that which is beyond his nature ; and therefore we accept with gratitude his declaration in this epilogue — And who loves War for War's own sake Is fool, or crazed, or worse. There is no one also who will not agree with the view expressed at the end of the epilogue— that it is right, even though the realm be in the wrong in the war, " to crown with song the warrior's noble deed." And here the Singer for his Art Not all in vain may plead " The song that nerves a nation's heart, Is in itself a deed." This is truth he sings, and it makes us wish that he had written more war-lyrics on the noble gests of Englishmen. He did write two extraordinarily fine things — The Fight of the Revenge and The Defence of " Maud " and the War-Poems 237 Lucknow, but the latter is a little too detailed, a little too historical. The Charge of the Light Brigade was written in 1854. In the year following, Maud appeared. The war ele- ment continues to live in this poem, and its presence does not improve, but injures it. War presides at its conception, is inwoven with it, and directs its end. The beginning of the poem, which attacks, in the mouth of a nervous, slothful man, the evils of a world whose only god is commerce and whose goddess is com- petition, is written with apparently the direct purpose of holding up, at the close, war as the remedy for those evils. For I trust if an enemy's fleet came yonder round by the hill, And the rushing battle-bolt sang from the three-decker out of the foam, That the smooth-faced, snub-nosed rogue would leap from his counter and till, And strike, if he could, were it but with his cheating yard-wand, home. This is said in the character of the spleenful hero, but yet the verse is Tennyson's own. The war waged then would be in defence of hearth and home — a just war. But the Crimean war was not in that category. And the poem ends with that war as the cure for the evils of peace. There is too little distinction made between war and war. Further on, the death of Maud's brother in a duel at the hand of Maud's lover, which dissolves the love story 238 Tennyson in catastrophe, contrasts the sin of private war with the nobility of public war for a worthy cause. The mad- ness caused by this private revenge is healed by the lover joining the national effort to right a wrong. The social war of competition is to be also healed by the spirit of sacrifice in the nation which is aroused by a public war. The whole of this, as I have said before, is a great pity. Moreover, this part of the subject is artistically unfortunate, for the Crimean war was the most foolish, the most uncalled for, and the least deliberate of all our wars. It mixed us up with the Emperor of the French, a miserable companionship for a country which desired honour and freedom. Its management at first was a disgrace to the War Office of England. The sub- ject, then, of the poem was radically bad so far as the war-element in it was concerned, and this acted not only on those parts of the poem which belonged to the war, but also, even without the artist's consciousness of it, disturbed the beauty of the whole, and weakened the emotional impression he desired his work to make. An element, troubling to art, underlies the handling and the conduct of the poem. But, in spite of this, Maud, in its joy and sorrow alike, is the loveliest of Tennyson's longer poems. It does not possess much natural description. We see the landscape only in allusions, but it is clear enough. Above is the moor-land, dark purple ; below is the shore and the loud-resounding sea, whose restless waves in storm thunder on the pebbled beach. Between the moor and " Maud" and the War-Poems 239 the sea, on the low ground, are the village and the vil- lage church, " gables and spire together " ; and on the hillside the hall and garden where Maud lives ; and not far off the lover's house, a haunted place, near which is a flowery wood and a dark red sandstone hollow in the hill. This is the scene where so fateful a passion is played, and there is not much of Nature in it. But here and there throughout the poem there are separate touches full of observation : * A million emeralds break from the ruby-budded lime, is as faithful to the colour, as this which follows is to the sound of the thing described : Just now the dry-tongued laurels' pattering talk Seem'd her light foot along the garden walk. He saw every year the temper of a south-coast gale and the look of the sky : Morning arises stormy and pale, No .sun, but a wannish glare In fold upon fold of hueless cloud. And the budded peaks of the wood are bow'd, Caught and cuffed by the gale : I had fancied it would be fair. * Nothing can be closer to truth than the line " The scream of a madden'd beach dragg'd down by the wave ; " but it is only true for the beach of the southern coast where the sea- rounded pebbles of the chalk, piled in loose banks on the shore, are rolled over and over, grating and grinding, by the retreating wave. 240 Tennyson Contrast with this wild cloudy morning the quiet pure sky of a night in spring — fitted, as it is, to the dark calm which had followed the lover's madness : My mood is changed, for it fell at a time of year When the face of night is fair on the dewy downs, And the shining daffodil dies, and the Charioteer And starry Gemini hang like glorious crowns Over Orion's grave low down in the west, That like a silent lightning under the stars She seem'd to divide in a dream from a band of the blest. These are broad sketches, but Tennyson can do the most minute and finest drawing, and no better example exists of it than the description of the tiny shell the lover finds on the beach. The shell is dead, but the poet's animating hand cannot bear that it should be life- less ; and he images, with the finest sympathy, with orna- menting love, its last inhabitant : The tiny cell is forlorn, Void of the little living will That made it stir on the shore. Did he stand at the diamond door Of his house in a rainbow frill ? Did he push, when he was uncurl'd, A golden foot or a fairy horn Thro' his dim water-world ? These are direct descriptions of Nature, but Maud is remarkable, even among the other poems, for the deter- mined way in which Nature is charged in it with the human passions. The hollow where the lover's ruined " Maud" and the War-Poems 241 father slew himself is red, flower and rock, to the eyes of his son. Its lips in the field above are dabbled with blood-red heath, The red-ribb'd ledges drip with a silent horror of blood. He had lost his fortune by speculation, wherefore, when he walked out, the wind like a broken worldling wail'd, And the flying gold of the ruin'd woodlands drove through the air. When the lover first hopes for Maud's love, every bird in the sky cries to her and calls to her ; the daisies that her foot touches are rose-tinted by her touch. All the world from west to east, all the seas, blush with joy when she is on the point of yielding. The great cedar that sighs for Lebanon sighs no more, for it is haunted by her starry head, over whom thy darkness must have spread With such delight as theirs of old, thy great Forefathers of the thornless garden, there Shadowing the snow-limb'd Eve from whom she came. The stars, feeling with his joy, go in and out on the heavens with merry play. A livelier emerald twinkles on the grass, A purer sapphire melts into the sea. The swell of the long waves on the shore is enchanted ; and in that lovely song, when her lover waits for Maud in the dawn, and the planet of love begins 16 y 242 Tennyson to faint in the light that she loves On a bed of daffodil sky, he transfers all the passion of his heart to the flowers and the flowers become part of his heart. " The soul of the rose went into my blood." The lilies kept awake all night with him. When she is coming at last, the garden speaks for him : There has fallen a splendid tear From the passion-flower at the gate. She is coming, my dove, my dear : She is coming, my life, my fate ; The red rose cries — " She is near, she is near " ; And the white rose weeps — " She is late" ; The larkspur listens — " I hear, I hear" ; And the lily whispers — " I wait." No example can be better of this method by which Nature is made the reflection and illustration of a human soul, except perhaps this beautiful thing — - From the meadow your walks have left so sweet That whenever a March wind sighs He sets the jewel-print of your feet In violets blue as your eyes. To the woody hollows in which we meet And the valleys of Paradise. As to the upbuilding of the poem, Tennyson called it a Monodrama. The story, though very simple, is capable of bringing together a host of complex feelings, and in the one character of the hero they all clash into a drama of the soul. Fate, too, broods over it from the beginning. " Maud " and the War-Poems 243 Given the characters of Maud and her lover, and the events that preceded their love, the tragedy is inevi- table. This is a justly dramatic situation. We expect the ruin ; and the transient happiness of the lovers only renders it more pitiable. But the openly dramatic part of the poem ends with the first part where Maud's brother is slain by her lover, and the girl dies of the double pain. The second part is the result of this catastrophe on the life of the hero — his flight, his mad- ness, and the resurrection of his manliness. The dra- matic element in this part is in the mind of the lover — in the involution and struggle of the sane and insane in him. The hero is a nervous, affectionate, half-hysterical person, often gentle, often violent from weakness ; who lives on the edge of the supernatural ; morbidly excited by the suicide of his father, by his lonely life, and by brooding in inaction on those iniquities of commerce which ruined his father, and which he imputes to the whole of society. The roots of his hair are stirred when his father's corse is brought home at night. He hears the dead moaning in his house at noon, and his own name called in the silence. The physical irritability transfers itself to his moral world, and becomes a weak anger with man and God without one effort to meet the evils at which he screams. His first utterance in the poem is a long shriek in a high falsetto note against the wrongs and curses which come of a vile peace. " Is it peace or war ? " he cries ; " better war ! loud war by land and sea." 244 Tennyson And then he thinks of Maud, who was his playmate. She is coming home. " What is she now ? My dreams are bad. She may bring me a curse." When Maud comes, his diseased pride pictures her as cold and con- temptuous, while his heart is thrilled by her charm. Pride and first love are at a variance, and he has no strength to decide between them. Now one, now the other gains the mastery. And in the strife, he breaks into fury with the world again. All men and women are slanderers and cheats, and Nature is one with rapine. " The whole little wood where I sit is a world of plunder and prey." And we are puppets in the hand of an unseen power, and degraded puppets. Nature and man and God, if there be a God, are all bad. On this shattered character Maud dawns like the morning ; fresh, simple, and young, full of gentle feeling, easily won to love ; romantic, having her womanhood in a sweet purity and grace, but as yet with no character — characterless, like Miranda. And her joyousness breaks in on his gloom. He hears her singing : A passionate ballad gallant and gay, A martial song like a trumpet's call. Singing alone in the morning of life, In the happy morning of life and of May. Singing of honour and death in battle — for now the war motive steals in — till he is ready to weep for a sordid time, and for his own base languor. From that moment their love runs on from point to point. His character forbids him to believe in her ; yet he cannot but " Maud " and the War-Poems 245 believe in her a little, for love has mastered him. Jealousy comes next, and in the turmoil within he recognises that he is not a true man. It is a man the country wants, some strong man to rule it ; it is a man he needs himself to be, and the midmost motive of the poem is in the lines : And ah for a man to arise in me. That the man I am may cease to be ! Then comes the outburst of this enfeebled character, half conscious of its possibility of madness, for the joy of love — one of the finer passionate things of Tennyson : let the solid ground Not fail beneath my feet Before my life has found What some have found so sweet ; Then let come what come may, What matter if I go mad, 1 shall have had my day. He meets Maud in the woodland places, and begms to hope, and at night he wanders round her house. And here Tennyson calls up again the special note in this lover's nature, the nervous thrill which passes into pre- sentiment of evil even in the moment of his joyous hope, and which is awakened by so slight a thing as all the curtains of the house being drawn close. He hears no sound where he stands but the rivulet running and the dash of the waves, but he looks and sees all round the house 246 Tennyson The death-white curtain drawn ; ■■ ~ Felt a horror over me creep, Prickle my skin and catcli my breath, Knew that tlie death-white curtain meant but sleep, Yet I shudder'd and thought like a fool of the sleep of death. The same half-physical, half-imaginative horror comes on him in the very height of his delight, when Maud has promised to love him. All the beginning of the splendid ode of joy he sings to his heart is full of love's loveliest rapture : I have led her home, my love, my only friend. It continues rapturous to almost the close. But mortal affairs never stand for long on the topmost peak. And this man was sure to tremble into a suggestion of misery when he was most victorious in delight. " Beat, happy stars," he cries, " timing with things below, Beat with my heart more blest than heart can tell. Blest, but for some dark undercurrent woe That seems to draw — but it shall not be so ; Let all be well, be well." Another element comes into the poem when Maud's brother arrives. The lover hates him. Is he not the son of the man who cheated and ruined his father ? Yet Maud loves her brother, and Maud has loved himself. Shall he not then cease to hate ? Shall he not forgive ? May he never forget, in his hatred of the brother, all he owes to the sister ! Yes, may God make him then more wretched even than he has been. And he feels hysteri- " Maud " and the War-Poems 247 cally happy that he is free from hate, when, in reaHty, it only needs a touch to bring the hatred to the surface and to make him forget everything in the moment, except the moment. He has no strength, no steadiness, no self-control. All this is careful preparation for' the catastrophe, and for the madness that follows it. The inevitableness of the end is seen in the character. And it is fine intellectual work, an excellence in this poem which is too much forgotten in the admiration we give to its beautiful' love-passages — an excellence which is even greater in the descriptions of the lover's madness in the second part of the poem. At last, these two meet in the garden, and while he waits, he sings that lovely song which all the world knows, and on which I need not dwell, but in which, through all its eager emotion, the poet does not lose his intellectual self-control, nor his steady directing of his subject. He prepares, at its very close, for one of the most forcible motives which he uses regarding the lover's madness in the second part — the motive of the living man believing that he is dead and that Maud, were she to come, would make him rise again. Here is this pre- paring passage, a leitmotif for the next part, the melody of which Wagner would introduce again and again in the second part : She is coming, my own, my sweet ; Were it ever so airy a tread, My heart would hear her and beat, Were it earth in an earthy bed ; 248 Tennyson My dust would hear her and beat. Had I lain for a century dead ; Would start and tremble under her feet, And blossom in purple and red. She comes ; the brother finds them together ; in rage he strikes Maud's lover, answering a fierce outbreak of wrath. But even before his sweetheart this lover has no power over himself, and he strikes again. The duel follows ; the brother is slain, and Maud sees the slaugh- ter. On the top of rapturous love comes bloody tragedy. The second part follows. The lover has fled, Maud's wild cry in his ears, and a ghostly image of her haunting his steps. His brain is for a time on the verge of mad- ness, and Tennyson pictures this tottering condition along with love's pathetic agony. Then a time of real madness supervenes, and this also the poet strives to paint as it would be in the character he has drawn. Both these states of mind and emotion are wrought with the most careful intellectual consideration. A study of the characteristics of madness and its approach seems to lie behind them, and to have preceded the emotional representation of the mortal sorrow and love of the hero. This scientific element is a little too prominent, at least it is so in Part v., which begins. Dead, long dead Long dead ! in which the madness has fully come. The mind of a madman gambols from the point in hand, and Tenny- " Maud " and the War-Poems 249 son has skilfully wrought this out. But these sudden changes do not arise, as Tennyson makes them arise, from a thought or a memory suggested by what the madman is saying to himself, so much as from some physical change in himself, or from some suggestion to his senses from the world without. Here his mad- ness is set off on a new path by the words he hears himself using. He runs away on the new images they suggest to him. And as this is the case, the whole of this Part v. falls almost into a logical order, as if at the bottom of his madness the man was not mad at all. We can trace, then, the elaborate argumentative way in which Tennyson has worked it out — a thing we cannot do, for example, in the madness of Ophelia — a similar madness of love and sorrow and death. The picture is also carefully made up of scattered impressions recorded in the first part of the poem. These are apparently huddled together in the disorder of madness, but it is not really so. They have a connection, and the stitches which unite them are too clear. The inter- spersed reflections are also too sane — as, for instance, Friend, to be struck by the public foe, Then to strike him and lay him low, That were a public merit, far, Whatever the Quaker holds, from sin ; But the red life spilt for a private blow — I swear to you, lawful and lawless war Are scarcely even akin. A madman might think a part of it, but not the whole, and not in that way. 250 Tennyson Even in two previous divisions (ii. and iv.) reflections are introduced which are too exclusively of the intellect. They lower the emotional note by their intrusion. The verse in division ii. — Strange, that the mind, when fraught With a passion so intense One would think that it well Might drown all life in the eye — That it should, by being so overwrought. Suddenly strike on a sharper sense For a shell, a flower, little things Which else would have been past by ! And now, I remember, I, When he lay dying there, I noticed one of his many rings (For he had many, poor worm) and thought It is his mother's hair — is out of tune with the rest of this lovely and pathetic poem. I wish also that the physiological reflection in verse 8 of division iv. were out of the poem : 'T is the blot upon the brain That 7(/;7/ show itself without. Every now and then the science Tennyson chose to meddle with enters into his art in this distressful way. With these slight exceptions, the divisions ii., iii., and iv., in which the approach of madness is drawn, are of extraordinary loveliness. They do not sound the deep- sea depths of sorrow, remorse, and love, but they are of an exquisite and pathetic gentleness, and their grief and love are as profound as the character Tennyson has " Maud" and the War-Poems 251 drawn was capable of feeling. In iv. he rises with that lonely cry at the beginning, O that 't were possible After long grief and pain To find the arms of my true love Round me once again, into perhaps the tenderest music of sorrow in all his poetry, half of sweet memories of the past, half of broken misery in the present, and with one touch of hope for the future made out of the image of his love in heaven. If only he had left out these lines in the last verse. And I loathe the square and streets, And the faces that one meets, Hearts with no love for me, the end would be as perfect as the beginning. Part iii. is the resurrection of the lover, and is dedi- cated to war as the redeeming power. The first verse is beautiful, but it is strange for a soul in the peace of heaven to place a new hope for the world in the Crimean war ; nor do the fine passages and river-rolling metre of the rest of the poem excuse, in my opinion, the advo- cacy of war, by means of art, as the saviour from national sin. In conclusion, there are yet two things to say. The first regards the intellectual power revealed in the first and second parts of the poem, in due subordination to the rule of passionate imagination. There is no view so mis- 252 Tennyson taken as the common view, that poets, because they deal chiefly with the emotions, are for that very reason less intellectual than men whose work lies in science, phi- losophy, logic, or law. On the contrary, it is in the sphere of the highest and deepest emotions, when they are so controlled by the artist's will towards the perfect representation of his idea as not to flame in violent rush but to burn with a steady core of white fire, that the loftiest efforts and successes of the intellect of man are made, and reach their keenest point of expression. Every great poem, then — and no poem can be great without intensity of feeling — is also a treasure-house of the intellectual powers, and can be studied, like a uni- verse, from that point of view. Maud is not one of the least of these. Secondly, I have made certain criticisms on Maud, and I am troubled by having made them. To point out imperfections, or what seem to me imperfections, in a poem I love so dearly, is like a patriot who draws atten- tion to the imperfections of his country. But if he love her well and honestly, his country is none the worse. She is so far above him, and her beauty is so clear, and he is so conscious of it, that no one, he thinks, will imagine that he desires to lessen the world's admiration of her. And Maud is so beautiful a poem that the small regrets of criticism are as nothing in comparison with the large delights its poetry gives. Moreover, the criticisms may be all wrong. When we approach a great poet's work, our proper position is humility. " Maud " and the War-Poems 253 But these criticisms have been all of one kind. They have objected to the intrusion of scientific analysis into a work of art, and to the direction of it to the support of a disputable moral theory — that the nation and the individual may be set free from selfishness by war. These objections are stronger against Maud than against a different kind of poem, because Maud is, of all Ten- nyson's longer poems, the most distinctly a piece of pure art. All the love story, both in its joy and sorrow, lies solely in the realm of imaginative and passionate art, and its loveliness is there supreme. The jarring note then which is made by intellectual analysis, and by moral purpose, pushed into this sweeter and higher realm, is more harsh and grating than it would be in a poem not so divinely beautiful. This, which is the real excuse for the criticisms, is in itself an additional homage to those lovely, unalloyed parts of the poem which are charged with personal emotion alone. It is difficult to say anything in praise of these parts, because that which reaches a high loveliness is above all praise. It is loved of those who can love it. When they are asked why they love it, they answer, " I love it because I love it," and when they are asked why it is good, they answer, " Because it is good ; he that hath ears to hear let him hear." What are we to do with folk who cannot hear the soft, wild, changeful music of verse and of emotion — repeating one another in difference, each echo awakening a new melody and beauty mak- ing all their atmosphere — of poems like 2 54 Tennyson A voice by the cedar tree, or, Still more varied in interwoven changes of feeling, each change it makes with its own metrical form — that high canzone of enchanted love — I have led her home, my love, my only friend. But why should I say more ? It is impossible to criti- cise these things, to explain why they or the Garden Song are beautiful, or why the poem of the broken heart, "O that 'twere possible," reaches in simplicity those depths of sorrow where beauty sits in the garb of pity and subdues the soul. CHAPTER X IDYLLS OF THE KING IN the Idylls of the King Tennyson has worked up into a whole the ancient story of Arthur, a story which is at least a thousand years old. How it first arose none can tell. Whether it has any historical basis it is also impossible to decide. It is supposed that there was an historical Arthur who fought twelve great battles with the English heathen, and who had many hero-chieftains under his sway and in his devotion, but the more we look at him the more his figure recedes into the mist of legend or of myth. Even the country where he reigned, and the lands over which his wars were waged, are not known to us. Some scholars make him a warrior of Southern Britain. Others place him in the North, beyond the Border, and he fights with the Saxon chiefs from Dumbarton to the eastern coast, beating them back in twelve great battles. Out of the dim vapour of ancientry these two great figures rise, and the name of Arthur alone mingles them into one. Tennyson takes the first tradition, and it is the one that has the most prevailed in literature. 255 256 Tennyson It is not, however, with an historical, but with a myth- ical Arthur that we have to deal, and we need not be forced to surrender the wild island of Tintagil, the mystic expanse of Lyonnesse, the rock of Glastonbury rising from its marshes, and the lovely meadows round Caer- leon upon Usk. There is our romantic country ; there the legendary land where Arthur was born ; there the valley of Avalon where he took refuge when wounded to the death. There is not one touch of the real world in all the scenery that Tennyson invents in his poem. It belongs throughout to that country which eye hath not seen nor ear heard, but which the heart of man has imag- ined. It is more than invented landscape. It often breathes the atmosphere of the fairy lands, and of those dreams which open the spaceless realms beyond our senses. It seems to be born before the sight and then to die and be born in another form — changing, yet un- changed. No mortal hands have built the city of Arthur and his palace. It is no land dwelt in by bold bad men we see, when Arthur rides through the mountains and finds the diamonds ; when Geraint and Enid go through the green gloom of the wood ; when Galahad rides over the black swamp, leaping from bridge to bridge till he sail to the spiritual city ; when Lancelot drives through the storm to the enchanted towers of Carbonek seven days across the sea. Nor is the Nature actual Nature, but that which is seen From magic casements opening on the foam Of perilous seas, in fairy lands forlorn. Idylls of the King 257 And when we can disburden ourselves of the ethics and allegory, the personages are still as dreamlike as the landscape, old as the seas that roll over Lyonnesse, and yet young for ever in imagination. In our everyday world the Arthur and Guinevere of Romance, Lancelot and the Lady of the Lake, Gawain and Galahad, Perci- vale and Elaine are unreal shapes ; yet how real they are in a better world ! The interests of the world we call real fade and die, our children will not care for them ; for half of them, for those that are not founded on love, we do not care ourselves ; but the interests of romance are eternal. They blossom into a new spring year by year, and we take more thought for the fates of Lancelot and Guinevere than we do for what the Swede intends or what the French. For " fable is Love's world," and the great myths and their figures are the dear inhabitants of the heart of man. Centuries have been stirred and thrilled by Arthur and his knights. England, France, Germany, and Italy have awakened into creation at their Celtic touch ; and poetry, painting, sculpture, and music have replied to their enchantment. From Cornwall or the North the story got to Wales ; from Wales it fled to Brittany. From Brittany it re- turned to Wales and crossed the March into England in the Brut of Layamon, the first English poem of the imagination after the Conquest. But before that time, it had got from Brittany into France, and from France in French to England, where prose tales in Latin and poems in English and in Norman French sent it far and 17 258 Tennyson wide. Chaucer owned its power ; Malory embodied it ; Spenser seized it ; Milton thought of it as an epic ; Dryden considered it ; Wordsworth touched it ; Tenny- son took up its lyre again ; Morris and Swinburne and Arnold entered into its enchanted land. But it was characteristic of Tennyson's steadiness of temper and fulness of thought that he should try to make his form of it complete and new-created. At first it moved him only as romance, and we have seen how his youth played with it in The Lady of Shalott, in Sir Galahad, and in the ride of Lancelot and Guinevere through woods of love and spring. Then in the Morte d' Arthur the story was fitted in 1842 by certain modern touches to modern life, yet these had to be explained by the pro- logue and epilogue. In that poem itself the tale was chief ; it follows the old romance and breathes its air. In 1842, when the Morte d' Arthur appeared, Tenny- son does not seem to have thought of making the story allegorical. I do not even think that when the first four Idylls were published — Geraint and Enid ; Merlin and Vivien j Lancelot and Elaine ; and Guinevere — Tennyson wrote them with a set allegorical intention. They are only modernised by being made a representation of true love and false love. Vivien the harlot is set over against the tender innocence of Elaine. Enid, the true wife, is opposed to Guinevere who has been untrue. The men also represent different phases of love as modern as they are ancient. Geraint and Merlin, Lancelot and Arthur, have each their distinct lesson — beyond the story — to Idylls of the King 259 modern life. They have not yet become allegorical, and even the lesson, the ethical aim, is as yet subordinate to the story. True conduct, as is just in art, is indirectly, not directly taught. But when we come to 1870 — to the volume which began with The Coming of Arthur — the inner intention of the whole poem seems to be changed. The making of a kind of epic out of the story of Arthur, which should have an instructive but indirect relation to the moral needs of society and the individual, is placed upon the second plane. The poem is now an allegory of the soul of man warring with sense, and passing on its way through life to death, and through death to resurrection. The great rulers of the kingdom of human nature — the intellect, the conscience, the will, the imagination, the divine spirit in man — are shadowed forth in mystic per- sonages. The historic powers which stand outside the soul and help it to reign and work — the Church, the Law, the great Graces of God — are also embodied. Moreover, the various conditions of human nature in its growth from brutality to an ordered kingdom, that which saves or loses true life, the general desires and tendencies of man, the temptations which beset him, the wise and unwise views of the goal of life, the love which saves, the love which ruins, the religious passion which leads aright and that which leads astray, are symbolised before us in a number of other personages, episodes, and events invented by Tennyson for the sake of his allegory. The Coming of Arthur shows this conception fully 26o Tennysofl orbed in the mind of Tennyson. < sA.rthur is the rational soul^no t the son of Uther and Ygerne. but comingjiyfs- teriousIyJiQU Lheaven and washed into Mer ljn^arms by a great wave. / Mer^fg,. who educates him is . intellectu al power, with all the magic of science. Arthur's kingship IS opposed by the brutal_and sens ual powers in human nature^ but the soul beats them down, and lets in light and justice over the waste places of human nature where the ape, the tiger, and the bandit lurk. ^JijjjjjfiyerS is the heart , and all we mean by the term. The soul, to do its work, must be knit to the heart in noble_jnarriage — Arthur must be wed to Guinevere. The Knights of the Round Table are the high faculties in man whom the soul builds into order round it, to do its just and re- forming will. When the King is crowned and married the three great fairies that stand by are Faith, Hope, and Charity ; and the Lady of the Lake, " clothed in white samite, mystic, wonderful," who gives the soul Excalibur — the sword of the Spirit — with which to do his war- work against base sense, appetite, and their disordered tyranny, is the Church. In embodying these concep- tions, every word, every adjective, every description is weighed by Tennyson. The symbolism is extended into the remotest recesses of the tale. The allegory is thus fully launched in The Coming of Arthur, and the Idylls that were published with it, and that followed it, were written to the allegory. Even those that preceded it appear to have been somewhat modified to suit its requirements. Idylls of the King 261 The question now arises, Of what kind was this alle- gory of Tennyson's, and how did he manage it ? It differed from the allegories that preceded it. The great mediaeval allegory, The Romance of the Rose (the type of all allegory in the Middle Ages), was nothing but an allegory. There was no story connected with it which was independent of the allegory. The series of events and adventures which brought the knight at last to the enjoyment of the Rose were allegorically invented, and each of them had its meaning. The story was obscure and the allegory was plain. But in Tennyson's poem the story existed already ; it was independent of the allegory, and it forms an important part of the poem. Neither is the allegory plain ; it is hidden beneath the story. Our next great allegory is The Faerie Queeiie. That is also plainly allegorical. The names make the meaning clear. The Red Cross Knight, Una, Duessa, Orgoglio, the Dragon, all tell their tale. But there is much more of a story in this first book of The Faerie Qucene (and I speak of the first book alone, for it is the only one which has a clear unity) than there is in The Romance of the Rose. We are nearly as much interested in the knight, in Una, and in many of the minor characters, as we might be if they were real personages, and not images of truth and purity, of pride and falsehood and hypoc- risy. But in Tennyson's poem the story is often greater than the allegory ; it still breathes, and moves, and in- terests those to whom allegory is a weariness. At other times the story is of equal weight with the allegory, and 262 Tennyson we can ignore the allegory if it please us to do so. This separates altogether the Idylls of the King from The Faerie Queene. Moreover, the names are not allegorical. We have to search for a hidden, not to follow a plain allegory. Spenser invented a story to suit his concep- tion ; Tennyson took an old tale and inserted his con- ception into it. But he was forced by his allegorical end to frequently invent as well, and his inventions, though they are often of the finest quality (as in Th£ Holy Grail), confuse our interest in the story as much as the story confuses their meaning. The allegory and the tale do not fit throughout. They clash and trouble one another. An allegory, to be right in art, ought to have a story entirely invented for its purpose. The next great allegory with which we may compare that of Tennyson is the first book of The Pilgrim's Progress. This is the finest allegory in the English language — the ideal art-thing. It proclaims itself an allegory by the names. The city of Vaaity Fair, the Delectable Mountains, tell what they are ; and yet these places seem as real as London and the Surrey hills. Christian and Pliable, Faithful and the Old Adam, Wanton and Mr. Worldly Wiseman, Great-Heart and Giant Despair, tell also who and what they are ; and yet they are all alive, they talk like living beings ; we have met them in life — yesterday in the streets ; they awaken the keenest human interest. It is this combination of reality and allegory, of story and symbol, each of them clear, vivid, and human, and Idylls of the King 263 both going straight home to the experiences of the soul, which lifts The Pilgrim's Progress into the highest place. The story and the allegory are of almost equal weight in the imagination. The inherent fault of an allegory — want of human interest — has been overcome without any loss of the allegorical interest. This is a real triumph. Nobody else but Dante has done it, and his way was only partly allegorical. Tennyson has not done it. His poem is not plainly an allegory, nor is it plainly a story. Sometimes the men and the women are real, sometimes they are mere shadows. Sometimes the events are human and romantic, sometimes they are metaphysical, theological ideas in a romantic dress. We glide from reality to vision and from vision to real- ity. The two things are not amalgamated. In fact, the allegory might as well have been left out altogether, and this statement, if it be true, condemns the allegory in the Idylls of the King. Nevertheless, there is some- thing more to be said. Bunyan reached his perfection of work in this kind of literature by natural naivete., by the unconsciousness and the faith of a childlike imagina- tion. Tennyson reached what excellence he did reach in this matter by sheer dint of intellect. Few things have given me so high an idea of Tennyson's intellectual power as separate from his imagination, as his fitting in of the allegorical conceptions into the body of the story. He does not succeed in doing it well, because it was not in art to do it well ; but the efforts his intellect makes to do it, and the comparative success he attained, are 264 Tennyson proof of great intellectual power. They are failures, but they are gigantic struggles for success. It is almost a pity that he made these efforts at all. They confuse his ethical ends, and they were not needed to attain those ends. All he wanted to teach he could have taught and does teach through the acts of the men and women of the story. The repentance of Guinevere and the forgiveness of Arthur are far more impressive, and far simpler in their lesson to life, when we see Ar- thur as Arthur, and Guinevere as Guinevere, than when we see Arthur as the rational soul, and Guinevere as the heart, in human nature. Moreover, they are not only needless and confusing efforts, they are also not good art. They are apart from the true realm of poetry. We are conscious that in working them out and weaving them in, elaborate thinking has taken the place of creative emo- tion; that art has partly abdicated her throne to the under- standing. Whenever the allegory is mingled up with the story, the poetry is disturbed, the tale is weak, and we are a little wearied. This is not the case when the story is all allegorical, when it is invented by Tennyson for the allegory, as in The Holy Grail. Then there is no confusion, and the poem is in the highest degree poetic. What I say applies to the mixed poems, like Merlin and Vivien. Moreover, the artist's childlike pleasure in the tale, and his sympathy with its passionate elements, are replaced (when the allegory is too obviously intruded) by a want of naturalness, even by a kind of pride in cleverness, which that parvenu, the analysing intellect. Idylls of the King 265 always bring into poetry. I sometimes seem to detect that Tennyson really loved the work his intellect did on the allegory more than the work his imagination did upon the story ; that he loved the meanings he inserted into the tale more than the noble tale itself. This was a great mistake on his part, a mistake that artists make when they are seduced by the understanding. No one, a hundred years hence, will care a straw about the alle- gory ; but men will always care for the story, and how the poet has made the persons in it set forth their human nature on the stage of life. The humanity, not the metaphysics, is the interesting thing, and Malory's book, though Tennyson decries its morality, is more human more moral, than the Idylls of the King. Even the far- off mythic Arthur is more at home with us than the Arthur of the Idylls whenever we are forced to consider him as the rational soul. Tennyson was led away from this simple human posi- tion, yet he loved his mistake. " Accept," he writes to the Queen, " accept this old imperfect tale " : New-old, and shadowing Sense at war with Soul Rather than that gray king, whose name, a ghost, Streams like a cloud, man-shaped, from mountain peak, And cleaves to cairn and cromlech still ; or him Of Geoffrey's book, or him of Malleor's, one Touch'd by the adulterous finger of a time That hover'd between war and wantonness, And crownings and dethronements. This is to like his allegory better than the story, the work of his intellect more than the work of ancient 266 Tennyson imagination ; and there are a good number of persons who will thank Tennyson for this kind of thing. They will be happy to find out all about the allegory, and when they have found it out, and labelled all the char- acters and explained the metaphysical relations of these shadows, will persuade themselves that they are enjoying poetry. It is, however, an enjoyment of the understand- ing, not one of the imagination, a pleasure in analysis, not in beauty. Let them have their way ; they have their reward. But our reward will be to be able to leave, as much as possible, the allegory alone, and to be happy with that which is passionate, sensuous, human, simple and lovely in the poem, and in the ravishment the imagi- nation has in the seeing of these things. There is plenty of opportunity for such work, in spite of the allegory, in the Idylls of the King. The romance of the story has caught hold of the imagination of Ten- nyson, and in his treatment of it he has made many fresh and delightful inventions — not allegorical, but romantic. He has had great pleasure in opening out and developing the ancient characters, in clothing them with new dresses of thought, in fitting new emotions to the old events in which they play their parts. He has re-created some characters altogether : and even the leading personages are frequently quite independent of his allegory. He has built up around his people the image of a whole country, with its woods and streams, hills and moors, marsh and desert, dark oceans rolling in on iron coasts, vast wastes, ancient records of a bygone Idylls of the King 267 world ; hamlets and towns and wonderful cities, halls and great palace-courts with all their varied architecture ; storms, and sunshine, all kinds of weather, Nature in her moods of beauty and brightness, of gloom and horror. And over them he has shed a light from the ancient time, a romantic air and sky. These things belong to art. Moreover, within the realm of art much might be said of the technic of the verse. The poem belongs — though its composition stretched over so many years — to the central period of the blank verse of Tennyson, before he had wrought out (not to his or our advantage) a new kind of blank verse for his dramas, the habitude of which stole into the blank verse of his old-age, and made it in undramatic poems less musical, less delightful, even less skilful than it was of old. But here, through this long series of poems, the blank verse is of almost equal excellence throughout. It is, as a vehicle of thought and emotion, entirely at the poet's command. He can make it do exactly what he likes. It has, at his choice, ease and rapidity, or slow and stately movement, or it echoes in its sound the thought, the scene, or the thing. It is by turns loud or low, soft or rough in spirit, fluid or rigid, abrupt, delayed, smooth, continuous, weighty and light. There are also none of the changes, tricks and placing of csesura or accent which all the artists of the past in blank verse and especially Milton have used, with which Tennyson is not acquainted, and which he does not himself use 268 Tennyson with as much science as art. Yet the result is all his own. His blank verse stands apart, original, growing out of his own character and temper, and fre- quently modified and specialised by the special char- acters whom he is describing, and by the special forms of natural scenery which he paints. Lastly, it is extra- ordinarily concise — almost too concise. It sometimes becomes bald ; its " tricks " are sometimes too plain and too often repeated ; it often wants a rushing movement, and it is always a little too academic. We are too con- scious of its skill, of the infinite care spent on it, of a certain want of naturalness ; that is, it has the defects of its qualities. But we forget these defects when it is at its best. Then indeed it is extraordinarily noble, rolling like a full-fed river through the country of imagination. Such is it in The Holy Grail, in Guine- vere, in The Passing of Arthur. The Coming of Arthur, the first of these Idylls, is Tennyson's prologue to them all. The allegory and the story are both mingled in it — but in this poem the alle-^ gory is more prominent than the story. In this Induc- tion, Tennyson, having now determined on an allegory, is forced to place its main lines before his readers. The Idyll opens with the waste and harried kingdom of Leodogran , beast-ridden, heathen-ridden, and the weak king hiding with his daughter Guinevere in his castle. Then Leodogran calls on Arthur for help, and Arthur, riding by the castle, sees Guinevere, and loves Idylls of the King 269 her for his life ; and having set her father free from foes, asks in reward her hand. So stand forth the two, Arthur and Guinevere, who_ar e to grow jn ore anH mA«- apart asJifejnQx£S-on ; who, j geeting in high youth and joy, are to meet^f or the last- time in deep rep entance^and forgiveness nri^the hajifa-f)-f-riTf^~d-vpr nf DpatVi — ^jgrVmlp world of failure and si n and the ruin nf Lgrpai- hopes behind them : a common tragedyj Tennyson hews out these figures with a rough, animating chisel in this first poem. In the poems that follow they are finished. But he does all that is needed now, and does it well. Guine- vere is but slightly touched, but Arthur's character is, as is fitting, more elaborately treated. He is to be the ideal king — the ruler of men ; the bringer of law and peace and good government into his world, the redeemer of waste places and wasted lives, the knitter together into one compact body of his knights for purity of life and overthrowing of wrong. But he is to be more than king : he is to be t he ideal man ; and for that he must/loitd.' Lpye_ then isjjorn in^Mra, ^iTTTt is put into c onnection with his kingly _ work._ No work without love, but no continuance of love without work ; equal love of woman and work, but neither the woman nor the man made more than the work. " But were I joined with her," cries Arthur, " Then might we live together as one life. And reigning with one will in everything Have power on this dark land to lighten it, And power on this dead world to make it live." 270 Tennyson This is the ideal of marriage laid down in The Princess, and consistently supported through all the Idylls of the King ; and herein is the emotional side of Arthur. But his spiritual side is also sketched. He has dim dreams and visions, like the prince in The Princess, during which the outward world fades away. Strange and mystic powers from the unseen world stand round about him. He moves in God and in eternity while yet on earth ; and in these hours all phenomena are mist and dream. The mighty warrior on whom it seems to his knights the fire of God descends in battle ; the great ruler who is to the world's work as the glove is to the hand, cries in the spiritual hour when this solid earth is as a vapour, and in words worthy of a great poet — O ye stars that shudder over me, O earth that soundest hollow under me Vext with waste dreams ! Then the allegorical side of him is sketched. His senses are so exalted that he sees the morning star at noonday ; he comes from the great deep and goes to it again ; he is made king by immortal queens ; he is not doomed to death but to return and live again. The sword he wields blinds the eyes of men ; the city he lives in and the great hall of his knights is built by the intellectual and spiritual powers. Half, then, of this world, half of the mv ^world beyond, A rthur has the qualities of j >oth. and does his work in both with equal steadiness and fire. Idylls of the King 271 As such, he smites his own spirit into those who love him, so that, when his knights swear -allegiance, into every face there comes A momentary likeness of the king. So carefully, and with such foresight for the rest of the poem, is Arthur hewn out before us by the poet. But another personage needs also to be introduced : Lancelot, friend of the King, yet the lover of the Queen. He first appears with Arthur in the battle for Arthur's rights with the rebellious kings. They each save one another's life, and they swear on the stricken field a deathless love : And Arthur said : " Man' sword is God in man ; Let chance what will, I trust thee to the death.' '■7 Alas ! in the trust, and in t he friendship, lies hi d den all_ the tragic fate to come; an4, when we hear that Lancelot is sent by Artliur to fetchjQuineyere, \ye k:io\v_ that the joy, splendour^ and hopes oTt he King are alrea dy doomed. The rift is in the lute which will make all the music dumb. What faith has bound together, unfaith unbinds. O tragic world and tragic life of man ! Teii^ PYs pn has lifted to the h ighgalLp.eaLin_tiiis jDoem^theearly JBS Biration of the _King,an d his people, that aiir-gitj'_niay be„,wrought_ to fulness by ^j__catasJ;rQBhe. On ly a hi nj here and th ere sugges ts_t hp pairL- to come , but the hin ts a re clea r.. There is^a dmirable skill shown in th e manage- ment of this. 2 7^ Tennyson Thus the characters are placed in preparation for the whole. The story, as story, is set afloat by the ques- tions of Guine vere's father conc erning Arthur's birt h. Is he a lawful king or not ? , Arthur^s knights tell Leodogran 'the^oTcTTegendr^of Uther _a nd Ygern e and the siege of Tintagil. Thus Tennyson keeps touch with the tale which is his basis ; but after that, for the sake of his allegory, he invents, and Bellicent tells the story of Arthur's coronation, and the mighty oath by which the soul binds all the powers of man to follow him in purity to redress the wrongs of the world. In the midst there arises that fine vision of the Church as the Lady of the Lake — a splendid picture, in which every word is a symbol : A mist Of incense curl'd about her, and her face Well-nigh was hidden in the minster gloom ; But there was heard among the holy hymns A voice as of the waters, for she dwells Down in a deep ; calm, whatsoever storms May shake the world, and when the surface rolls, Hath power to walk the waters like our Lord. Then, to restore the humanity of the tale, Arthur's youth with his half-sister, Bellicent, is pictured — one of Tennyson's homely pictures of domestic tenderness ; and then, lifting himself easily into more exalted thought, he invents the magic story which signifies the coming of the soul into this world from the high heaven and out of the great deep. The allegory may be let go, but the description of Merlin and BleySj__des££niiin2 Idylls of the King 273 wJiile TTther is H ying tn the cove belo w Tintagil r,n<;t-l p^ is a piece of noble poetry — half nature and half legend : And then the two Dropt to the cove and watch'd the great sea fall, Wave after wave, each mightier than the last. Till last, a ninth one, gathering half the deep And full of voices, slowly rose and plunged Roaring, and all the wave was in a flame : And down the wave atfd in the flame was borne A naked babe, and rode to Merlin's feet. Who stoopt and caught the babe, and cried " The King Here is an heir for Uther ! " And the fringe Of that great breaker, sweeping up the strand, Lash'd at the wizard as he spake the word, And all at once all round him rose in fire, So that the child and he were clothed in fire. And presently thereafter follow'd calm. Free sky and stars. Scarcely less fine than this is the dream of Leodogran, and the description of the great church in the Maytime, and the stainless knights in white robes, upon the wedding morn — with the one torch, in which so much of tragedy is held, o f the drooped eyelid s_of Guineve re, in. whose heart lay_Laaeelat_HhiJe_her hand was clasped in Arthur's. Lastly, as a piece of glorious literature, there is the marriage and coronatiaa^2ng_of_ the knights. It was not in the first draft of The Coming of Arthur. It embodies the thought of the poem, grips the whole meaning of it together. And its sound is th£,.smmd_of_ martialtriumph, of vlciQriniis weapnnsjp battle, and of knights in arms. We hear in the carefully varied chorus, in the very rat tle and sh atterin g of the_ YQwels in the 18 2 74 Tennyso'A words, the beating of axe on ihelbA ^ii'd staft_on_shieid-^ R'liegedy-elsnfigg^.^clashing lines — ft is a splendid effort of art. King Olaf might have sung it. Blow trumpet, for the world is white with May ; Blow trumpet, the long night hath roll'd away ! Blow thro' the living world — " Let the King reign." Shall Rome or Heathen rule in Arthur's realm ? Flash brand and lance, fall battle-axe upon helm, Fall battle-axe, and flash brand ! Let the King reign. ^ Blow, for our Sun is mighty in his May ! Blow, for our Sun is mightier day by day ! Clang battle-axe, and clash brand ! Let the King reign. The King will follow Christ, and we the King In whom high God hath breathed a secret thing. Fall battle-axe, and flash brand ! Let the King reign. We hear its j:ontrast" in Merlin's song, a s soft and- fljixw,- ingas the other was braying and broken, and we think with gratitude of the artist who could do both with equal ease. The graciousness of the rivulet-music and soft play of Nature is in the lines of this delicate song, and the gaiety of youth ; and mingled with these the deep and favourite thought of Tennyson of the pre- existence of the soul. It is pleasant to hear it, for we have companied with the shadf«£.,of4rage4y : Rain, rain, and sun ! a rainbow in the sky ! A young man will be ■yviser by and by ; An old man's wit may wander ere he die. Idylls of the King 275 Rain, rain, and sun ! a rainbow on the lea ! And truth is tliis to me and that to thee ; And truth or clothed or naked let it be. Rain, sun, and rain ! and the free blossom blows ; Sun, rain, and sun ! and where is he who knows ? From the great deep to the great deep he goes.^ In The Coming of Arthur the King is crowned and married, and the land subdued to peace and justice. The heathen and the Romans are driven out ; the Round Table established. Arthur sits on the judgment- seat, and there is a sketch of him in Gareth and Lynette doing this work. Knights ride away each day from the Court to deliver the weak from the oppressor ; and the young men of noble birth in the kingdom whom Arthur's character has inspired come, like Gareth, to Camelot to join his band, seeking knighthood and high adventure. So everywhere the Order is recruited, the King's power grows, and into all the knights, young and clean and eager, the King pours his spirit : Clear honour shining like the dewy star Of dawn, of faith in their great King, with pure ijf'\. I Affection, and the light of victory, r ' Jv ' And glory gain'd, and ever more to gain. All is wein~~3iitt"rtTeT3yll of Gareth and Lynette repre- sents this golden time. In human affairs, in the history of great causes, in men's lives, in their love, there is a time of glad beginnings, such a beginning as Nature has in spring. Gareth is the image of this pleasant, pro- 276 Tennyson phetic time. He is also the image of the Arthurian kingdom in its youthful energy, purity, gentleness, ideal- ity ; he is moreover the incarnation of the vigour, cour- age, gaiety, and audacity of youth. Nothing seems impossible to the King and the Round Table ; nothing seems impossible to Gareth. When we are young, noth- ing seems impossible to us. " Madam," Youth says to Mother Nature, " there is no such thing as the impossi- ble." Then Nature smiles, for she loves the bold ; nevertheless, she strikes hard. If we are gay when we are smitten, she is on our side. We get our way for a time, and do what all the world says cannot be done. But if our courage fade at her stroke, or we take it sullenly, she frowns in scorn and tramples us beneath her feet. Gareth was one of these bold, gay creatures. He did not mind being a kitchen knave, nor the taunts of Sir Kaye, nor the mocking of Lynette ; and when Lancelot's spear hurled him to the ground, he broke out into frank laughter. Nor was he one whit daunted by the magic horrors of Night and Death. Fools of pageantry he thought them, and fools they are. The soul that laughs and loves and rides for the right, has the world at his feet while he is young. Something of this was in the mind of Tennyson when he invented and added to the story the symbolism of the knights that defended the fords of the river. The first was the Morning-Star, the second Noon-Sun, the third the Evening-Star, the fourth Night and Death. One by Idylls of the King 277 one they are overthrown by Gareth. His youth laughs at the attack which the temptations of youth, of middle age, of the evening of life, of death, of Time itself, make on men — that long, wrathful siege of battering days. Tennyson marks this meaning. In the carved allegory (a thing he has invented) near the hermit's cave, the rock bears five knights with the names Phosphorus, Mertdies, Hesperus, Nox, and Mors sculptured beneath them, and they are running down the soul — A Shape that fled With broken wings, torn raiment, and loose hair For help and shelter to the hermit's cave. It is " the war of Time," he says, " against the soul of man." But Gareth conquers all of them by audacity and gaiet)^ The encounters in this pageant are alike clear, varied, brief, set each in its own fair landscape, and the sound of the river accompanies them with warlike music. They are real enough, but they are also allegorical. It is easy for the faith and boldness of youth to conquer the sins and troubles of the dawn of life ; it is harder to slay those of its noonday ; it is harder still to overcome those of its late afternoon ; and Tennyson's representation of the Knight of the Evening- Star is full of original thought. He is old and hard ; he blows a hard and deadly note upon his horn. A storm- beaten, russet, many-stained pavilion shelters him. A grizzled damsel arms him in ancient arms. Beneath his arms a hardened skin fits close to his body. All is different from that which the commonplace imagi- 278 Tennyson nation connects with the evening star. We see the poet's meaning by the comparison he makes to illustrate the difficulty of Gareth's battle against the Knight of the Evening-Star : Till Gareth panted hard, and his great heart, Foredooming all his trouble was in vain, Labour'd within him, for he seem'd as one That all in later, sadder age begins To war against ill uses of a life. But these from all his life arise, and cry, " Thou hast made us lords, and canst not put us down ! " Nor is the representation of Night and Death, both of whom one champion images, less imaginative. The black horse, black banner, and black horn, the black armour painted with the white skeleton and helmed with the skull, are the ordinary thing. But the thunder gloom under which he rides, the chill of his aspect which strikes ice even into Lancelot, his huge pavilion which Sunders the glooming crimson on the marge, lift the work Tennyson does beyond the ordinary. And finally we reach thought, symbol, and full imagination together, when (the skull cloven by Gareth and then the helm) there issues forth from the black terror and the deadly chill the bright face of a blooming boy, " fresh as a flower new-born." It is Tennyson's view of Death, it is also his image of what it seems to youth, to gaiety, to daring, and to faith. And the story ends with the preg- nant line : Idylls of the King 279 So large mirth lived, and Garetti won the quest. All this part of the tale is vivid vi^ith pictures, touched with happy illustrations drawn from Nature,* and stead- ily builds up into fulness the character of Gareth. But the beginning is not so well done. The scenes between Gareth and his mother, who strives to keep him under her wing, are much too long, and the mother's dulness of perception when Gareth places, in two illustrations, his position before her, and her last argument, that the King may not be the true King, and therefore Gareth must stay at home, are quite out of nature. It is not till Gareth escapes, and is on his journey to Lancelot, that Tennyson recovers himself. And he does recover him- self admirably in his description of Camelot, and the * * Here are a few of these illustrations. Gareth cannot wholly overthrow the Evening-Star, no more Than loud Southwesterns, rolling ridge on ridge, The buoy that rides at sea, and dips and springs For ever. This also of the honeysuckle that flies about the cave : Good lord, how sweetly smells the honeysuckle In the hush'd night, as if the world were one Of utter peace, and love, and gentleness, might have been said by Jessica in the night scene in Portia's garden. Take two others. The first likens the cloth of gold which Mark sends to Arthur to A field of charlock in the sudden sun Between two showers. That is as quick-eyed as it is simple and true. See how the poet, to make our sight of the thing more brilliant, puts in " Between two 28o Tennyson mystic gate, and the magic music, and the visionary im- pression that the city makes upon the imagination, and the meeting with Merlin. It is fine invention, and many a line is worth a magic spell. Lastly, the first of the types of womanhood that Ten- nyson draws in the Idylls is Lynette, a fresh and frank young person, smart and thoughtless, quick-tongued, over-rude, over-bold both with the King and with Lan- celot, but honourable and pure of heart — the petulant, impatient type. Such a woman may be charming, but Lynette's sauciness wants charm, just because too much of the masculine roughness of Tennyson speaks in her. I do not allude to her rude scorning of Gareth as the kitchen-knave and her unsavoury mocking of him, for all that is taken directly from the original story ; but to the way in which Tennyson has expressed it, especially showers," just as in the next his imagination makes the plant feel its own fate. Wan-sallow as the plant that feels itself Root-bitten by white lichen. Gareth drops his cloak, and breaks bright in arms, like those Dull coated things, that making slide apart Their dusk wing-cases, all beneath there burns A jewell'd harness, ere they pass and fly. And the shield of the Noonday — As if the flower. That blows a globe of after arrowlets, Ten thousand-fold had grown, flashed the fierce shield, All sun. These come out of the full treasury Tennyson had collected in his mind of the precious sights of Nature. Idylls of the King 2SI to his attempt to give it a humorous turn. Lynette in Malory's hands is entirely in earnest, and her character is throughout consistent. She repents of her abuse, but she has no humour, and she has no delicate sentiment. But in Tennyson's hands we cannot quite tell whether she is in earnest or not, and what humour there is attempted is like that of an undergraduate.* Lynette, overdone in this way, is more a study of the saucy type of woman than a real woman. Moreover, when Tennyson wants to improve her, and shows fineness of nature in her, he divides her from herself. She becomes full of sentiment, and when she sings those charming little songs which one by one *Itis curious that a poet, whose humour is so excellent in. The Northern Fanner, and the other dialect poems, should fail so completely when he tries to be humorous in the Idylls of the King and in the Dramas. When, for example, Geraint is irritated by the villagers who answer all his questions by talking of the knight who calls himself the Sparrow-hawk, he cries : A thousand pips eat up your sparrow-hawk ! Tits, wrens, and all wing'd nothings peck him dead! Tennyson means him to be spleenfully humorous, and he is only absurd. When in the next two lines he leaves humour alone, he is excellent. Geraint cries out : Ye think the rustic cackle of your bourg The murmur of the world ! What is it to me ? Then he tries to be humorous again : O wretched set of sparrows, one and all, That pipe of nothing but of sparrow-hawks ! This is ridiculous on the lips of a stately knight. The only explana- tion I can make is that the solemn vehicle of heroic blank verse, and especially of blank verse so elaborate and academic as that of the Idylls of the King, is wholly unfitted for the expression of humour. 282 Tennyson embody the change of her view of Gareth, they are over-delicate for her previous character. We cannot fit O trefoil, sparkling on the rainy plain, O rainbow with three colours after rain, Shine sweetly : thrice ray love has smiled on me, with a voice like this : Dish-washer and broach-turner, loon ! — to me Thou smellest all of kitchen as before. Malory does not make that mistake. Lynette is one woman in his hands. In Tennyson she is two, and the two do not agree. I cannot make the same criticism with regard to Enid, whose character fills the next two Idylls, The Marriage of Geraint and Geraint and Enid. Enid is one woman, both as girl and wife. As Lynette is the type of petu- lance, so Enid is the type of patience. She is Tenny- son's Griselda. Lynette is audacious and free of tongue. Enid is silent in endurance of wrong. She is silent also when she ought to speak. She is afraid to blame Geraint for his sloth, because she knows he is slothful from love of her. And her fear, falling in with Geraint's suspi- ciousness, makes the trouble of the piece. Patience, when it is accompanied by fear or over-fancy, is turned from doing good to doing wrong. But, independent of this evil side of patience, Tennyson seems to like this kind of womanhood. Of all his women, Enid is the most carefully drawn, the most affectionate. She is Idylls of the King 28 J gracious, but she is one of those women who do a great deal of harm to men. The defects of their patience make in men tyranny and selfishness, jealous overbear- ing and ugly suspicion. In bad men these evils grow worse, till the man turns into a brute. In a suspicious but noble-hearted man as Geraint originally was, they produce, and often with startling suddenness, detestable conditions of mind and life, out of which men like Geraint, being good at root, are shocked back again into self-knowledge and repentance. This effect, however, is overdone by Tennyson. It would be difficult to find, outside of bad men, any one whose conduct is made more odious than Geraint's. Tennyson could not have recognised how far apart he wanders from what we call honour, nor do I think that his conduct is sufficiently motived from the point of view of art. Only the madness of jealousy, and not mere suspicion, is enough to partly excuse all he thought and all he did. He is not even represented as having' suffi- cient cause for his conduct. He is expressly said not to believe in Enid's loss of honour. Moreover, from the very beginning he is not quite a gentleman. A few days before his marriage, he doubts Enid's affection for him ; he wishes to prove her obedience, to test whether it is love for him she has, or desire for the splendours of a Court. If she will at a word, without reason given, come in her shabby dress to Court, then he will rest, fixed in her faith. What sort of a man is this ? He, at least, does not 284 Tennyson know what love means ; lost in himself, in vanity and suspicion. There is nothing of this suspicion in the original story. Geraint there is, like Leontes, suddenly attacked by jealousy and its special anger when he hears his wife say that he is not the man he was. And this furious jealousy motives his rude conduct. Jealousy maddens, and the Welsh writer, careful for his hero's repute, expressly says that for the time he was insane. But Tennyson does not make Geraint jealous in this way, nor put him into the madness of jealousy. He is only suspicious and angry, and his conduct to Enid, far worse than it is in the original, has not cause enough at the back of it to make it possible. The position is over- done. Nor does Tennyson's short introduction to the second part in Geraint and Enid — O purblind race of miserable men, How many among us at this vqry hour Do forge a life-long trouble for ourselves By taking true for false, or false for true — give a sufificient reason for the meanness of Geraint. Many men, indeed, lose the use of life in that fashion, but if they are of noble nature, as Geraint is represented at first, they do not fall so low as he, they do not quite dishonour their original character, they do not lose all chivalry to a woman. Or if they do, they do it because they believe their wife to be utterly false to them. This cause is excluded by Tennyson. Geraint falls too low, and his fall has not sufficient motive. Art has failed Tennyson. Idylls of the King 285 When the rumour about the Queen and Lancelot comes to Geraint's ear, he thinks that his wife may suffer taint because she is the Queen's friend, and he removes her from Court. Then he forgets all his duty and his fame in uxorious love of her. He fights no more ; he lets his province fall into confusion. This is natural enough, and though he is suspicious and feeble, he has not yet altogether lost gentlehood. Men laugh at him for his weakness. His wife saddens, and seeing her sad, his base suspicion that she is tainted deepens. He hears her murmuring one morning that she is no true wife, and leaps at once to the conclusion that she is not faith- ful in thought to him, bursts out into a reckless passion, and bids her ride into the wilderness with him — utterly careless of her, careful only for himself. When he meets the first three bandits, and she warns him, he cries : " If I fall, cleave to the better man " — an odious insult. In the midst of all this wrath, he eats like a man who has no trouble, and jokes at the mowers whom he has de- prived of their dinner. When Limours (Enid's old lover) comes into the inn, and, seeing Enid alone, asks leave to speak to her, Geraint answers : My free leave, Get her to speak ; she doth not speak to me. This is partly in the original, but what follows is not. While Enid sits in the room, Limours drinks and jests and tells loose tales. Geraint is pleased, and bursts into laughter ! Then it is that he gives Limours leave to tell 286 Tennyson his wife of his love to her. What ensues is still worse. Limours is slain next morning, and Geraint (though it is Enid herself who has asked Geraint to defend her from his pursuit, though he has himself almost handed Enid over to Limours) calls Limours her lover. These vilenesses are added by Tennyson to the Geraint of the old tale. There is not a trace of the gentleman left in Geraint. Limours is twice the lover and twice the gentleman. All this is overdone. It is impossible a gentleman could fall so low. It is also quite out of character with the days of chivalry in which the original story took its form. Moreover, as I said, the motive is not sufficient. Nor is Arthur's reproof to him sufficient punishment. His punishment ought to come in Enid's ceasing to love him. But Enid is not of that temper. She continues to love him ; but I wonder, even with her, whether in the future there was not some mild contempt mingled with her love. There would have been if Geraint fell as low as Tennyson makes him fall. Enid's love, after Geraint's conduct, is even more improbable than Griselda's. Independent of this main criticism, the poem is well wrought and full of beauty. The story is skilfully intro- duced, continued, and ended. The pictorial passages, and these are brilliant, are full of many happy touches of light and colour, happy asides of sentiment, with epigrams of wisdom and thought scattered among them like jewels on a golden robe. There is no weariness as we read : the eye sees something new, the ear hears Idylls of the King 287 some fresh sound, the heart and brain are stimulated from line to line. The work is delightful throughout from this point of view — concise, chosen, and luminous. We wish nothing out of, and rarely anything into the descriptions. There is no modern poet who has painted his landscapes in fewer words, and yet who painted all that was needful to make the scene, as far as he chose to see it, leap out before the eyes : So thro' the green gloom of the wood they past, And issuing under open heavens beheld A little town with towers, upon a rock, And close beneath, a meadow gemlike chased In the brown wild, and mowers mowing in it ; And down a rocky pathway from the place There came a fair-hair'd youth. He has rejected every unnecessary detail. I think he has rejected too much of his original, which I give below, but he is judge.* At least, he has carefully kept the human figures. The mowers mowing, the youth * Here is the original in Lady Charlotte Guest's translation of the Mahinogion : " And early in the day they left the wood, and they came to an open country, with meadows on one hand, and mowers mowing the meadows. And there was a river before them and the horses bent down and drank the water. And they went up oiit of the water by a lofty steep, and there they met a tender strip- ling, with a satchel about his neck, and they saw that there was something in the satchel, but they knew not what it was. And he had a small blue pitcher in his hand and a bowl on the mouth of the pitcher. And the youth saluted Geraint," etc., etc. That this is more alive, that there is more of the witchery of rep- resentation in it than Tennyson's lines, illustrates what is elsewhere said of the loss sometimes in his natural description of charm, and 288 Tennyson descending the path, strike forth the landscape. From 1842 onwards, indeed earlier when that brilliant appari- tion of Paris in CEnone issues from the wood, Tennyson rarely painted a landscape without humanity, and he places his figures with all the skill of a painter. He knew that Nature alone was not half as delightful as Nature and man together. Lover of Nature as he was, he avoided the crowning fault of modern poetry — the unmitigated merciless description of Nature, trickling on for fifty and a hundred lines together, without one touch of human interest. He knew the great masters — Homer, Virgil, and the rest of these who see and feel at the same moment — too well to fall into that dreary error. He was too much of a great master himself to com- mit it. It is from this impassioned mingling of the soul and sight of man with the soul and sight of Nature that the specialised loveliness arises which charms us, and dignifies itself, in the descriptions of Tennyson. There is no finer example of this than in Geraint's first sight of Enid. We see the castle courtyard, the ruined tow- ers, with all their grass and flowers and ivy, as with the naked eye. But in the midst we see Geraint and Yniol, especially of livingness, from too great a devotion to conciseness. The river is gone, and the horses bending to drink ; and the river is the living spirit of the landscape. I am sorry also to lose my curi- osity about the satchel. Above all, why have left out the eye of the picture, and in colour too ? How could he leave out the blue pitcher? Tennyson had no intense love of colour. He was no Venetian. Black and white were his favourite vehicles. Few of his shadows are in colour. Idylls of the King 289 and then we hear Enid singing and the castle court is filled with her. Nothing can be closer to nature than these lines, which describe the ivy climbing the castle ; every word is alive with fact : And monstrous ivy-stems Claspt the gray walls with hairy-fibred arms, And suck'd the joining of the stones, andlook'd A knot, beneath, of snakes — aloft, a grove. Wordsworth would have given a life of its own to that, but Tennyson draws it only as it is, leaves it, once he has brushed it in, and passes on to fill the ancient court with youth by Enid's voice, and to make her voice awaken fatherly love in Yniol's heart and passion in Geraint's. They stand still, enthralled, looking up, and listening. And Enid sings that song of fortitude in poverty, of the mastery of the soul in good or evil fort- une, which is so finely written that it speaks the very soul of enduring manhood and womanhood all over the world.* There is as much strength as there is beauty in the whole scene ; and the two comparisons of the effect on Geraint of Enid's voice are one of the noblest instances we can give of that sweet keen deli- cacy in Tennyson which, in contrast with his bluff power, is so pleasant a surprise. Let me quote the passage : * The motive comes from Dante ; but with what grace and beauty it is varied and enhanced ! The soul of the girl is in it, and the soul of the situation. And it fits, enlightens, strengthens, and con- soles those everywhere who are in a similiar condition. 19 290 Tennyson And while he waited in the castle court, The voice of Enid, Vniol's daughter, rang Clear thro' the open casement of the hall. Singing ; and as the sweet voice of a bird. Heard by the lander in a lonely isle, Moves him to think what kind of bird it is That sings so delicately clear, and make Conjecture of the plumage and the form ; So the sweet voice of Enid moved Geraint ; And made him like a man abroad at morn When first the liquid note beloved of men Comes flying over many a windy wave To Britain, and in April suddenly Breaks from a coppice gemm'd with green and red,* And he suspends his converse with a friend, Or it may be the labour of his hands. To think or say, " There is the nightingale " ; So fared it with Geraint, who thought and said, " Here, by God's grace, is the one voice for me." To this first impression of her Enid is true through- out. Her patience is too overwrought to permit us to class her among the higher types of womanhood — in- deed, these very patient women are always painted by men — and her own character is sometimes overwhelmed by the allegorical representation of patience Tennyson makes through her. But when we ignore this, and get down, below the type, to her natural womanhood, Enid is full of truth and life. When she hears that she is loved by Geraint and lies awake all night ; when she longs to be beautifully dressed to pleasure her lord and do him credit ; when she slips from her couch into her * Chaucer also saw these spring colours of the young trees — • " Some very red, and some a glad light green." Idylls of the King 291 golden dress, like the star of morn from a bank of snow into a sunlit cloud ; when time after time she warns Geraint of his foes ; when she is left alone in the bandit hall and thinks Geraint is dead, and sends the power of her suffering and her nature into the rude crowd, she is always of the same strength and gentleness, always sweet with a sacred charm, so that we do not wonder that Tennyson was so moved with his own creation as to write about her some of the loveliest lines he ever wrote of womanhood, when once more at home in her hus- band's heart she rides away with him from the savage lands : And never yet, since high in Paradise O'er the £our rivers the first roses blew, Came purer pleasure unto mortal kind Than lived thro' her, who in that perilous hour Put hand to hand beneath her husband's heart. And felt him hers again : she did not weep. But o'er her meek eyes came a happy mist Like that which kept the heart of Eden green Before the useful trouble of the rain. And with these lines, beautiful with a paradise of tender- ness, I leave these Idylls of Geraint and Enid. Balin and Balan, the Idyll next in order in the com- pleted book, was the last published by Tennyson. It shows no weariness of hand or brain, no lack of his clear conciseness, no want of imaginative presentation either of the moods of men or Nature. The blank verse is as skilful and robust as ever, only a little more abrupt, less 292 Tennyson flowing than in the earlier Idylls. The subject, however, continually demands this abruptness, for Balin is the incarnation of natural violence of temper. The intellect- ual treatment of the story is as fine as the imaginative. If we compare the tale as it is in Malory with Tennyson's re-making of it here for the purpose of his allegory, we shall understand how acutely, skilfully, and profoundly the combining intellect has built up the skeleton of the tale before the imaginative passion put flesh upon it and sent the blood racing through it. As he painted in Geraint suspicion growing into rudeness and meanness, and in Edyrn pride, or rather arrogance — and these evil things as enemies of the soul of man — so he paints in Balin the general idea of furious anger as another enemy of the soul. Balin, for Tennyson clings at times to the theory of heredity, drew this temper from his father. He was begotten in an hour of wrath. He was banished from the Table Round for an outbreak of violence. He is restored to it by Arthur and begins to learn gentle- ness from Lancelot and the King. But his moods, born in his blood, leap on him like fiends, and he despairs. The gentle temper of the Court is too high for him, and he takes to the wild woods again, his rage now turned upon himself — the chained rage " which yelpt within him like a hound." Struggle after struggle he makes against himself ; and well, and with an imaginative ethic, these are varied and drawn by Tennyson. The last struggle is that which he makes by keeping before his eyes the Queen's crown upon his shield. But the good Idylls of the King 293 this is to him is destroyed when he hears from Vivien that the Queen is false to Arthur and with Lancelot. His two ideals are overthrown. He bursts into frenzy, tramples on his shield, and Balan, his brother, mis- takes his unearthly yell for the cry of the Demon of the Wood. Ignorant of their brotherhood, these two charge one another, and both fall wounded to the death. Vivien removes their helms, they recognise each other, and their farewell is one of the most pathetic things which Tennyson has written. " O brother," answered Balin, " woe is me ! My madness all thy life has been thy doom, Thy curse, and darken'd all thy day ; and now The night has come. I scarce can see thee now. Good-night ! for we shall never bid again Good-morrow. Dark my doom was here, and dark It will be there. I see thee now no more. I would not mine again should darken thine. Good-night, true brother. " Balan answered low, " Good night, true brother here ! Good-morrow there ! We two were born together, and we die Together by one doom : " and while he spoke Closed his death-drowsing eyes, and slept the sleep With Balin, either lock'd in cither's arm.* This study of Tennyson's of Anger is quite original, and is made vivid by other characters clustered round it which exhibit different aspects of the same passion, of * Compare Mrs. Barbauld's " Say not Good Night, — but in some brighter clime Bid me Good Morning." 294 Tennyson the means to overcome it, and of the powers opposed to it. It would be interesting to make a full comparison of it with the various Angers of Spenser — with the Wrath in the chariot of Pride, with the Furor of the second book of The Faerie Queene, with the Frenzy of Pyrochles and Cymochles. In Spenser these characters are wholly allegorical. In Balin and Balan the human element is greater than the allegorical. The inevitableness of Balin's fate makes the pity of it. The constant love of the two brothers is drawn with as much tenderness as beauty, and the ethical lesson which is indirectly given by their story does not arise from the allegory but from their human fates, their sorrow and their love. Again, two new elements are introduced into the general representation, directly opposed one to the other — asceticism in King Pellam, and luxury (in the old sense of the word) in Vivien. Pellam, leaving human wrongs to right themselves, retires to his castle, lichen- bearded and grayly draped with streaming grass — A house of bats, in every tower an owl — scarcely eats, repudiates his wife, and lets neither dame nor damsel enter his gates, lest he should be polluted. Tennyson's hatred of asceticism, of monkery, of the gloom and curse of it, is here accentuated. It has risen far beyond that which he felt when he wrote Simeon Stylites. He intensifies it when he represents King Pel- lam as taking it up from spiritual conceit and to spite King Arthur. Moreover, he attacks the chief evil which Idylls of the King 295 follows asceticism when he makes Garlon, King Pellam's son, into the lover of Vivien the harlot, and places his lair in a cave, so black that it is like the mouth of hell. This horror of asceticism, of all religious views which separate men from doing the work of justice and love in the open world, is fully developed, but in a different way, in The Holy Grail. Vivien is the other element, now for the first time brought into the whole poem. She is here altogether allegorical, the incarnation of that impurity of sense which is, in Tennyson's mind, the bitterest enemy the soul can have, which more than all else breaks up and ruins not only States but also the powers by which States are made and held together — justice, knowledge, har- mony, order, truth, true love, man's energy and woman's insight. All go down before her attack, and the next Idyll develops her fully. Lastly, the descriptive power of Tennyson, which in the previous Idylls is concentrated into separate pas- sages, is here diffused through the whole. When we have finished the Idyll, we see the whole wood — great trees, dense underwood, sweet springs, wolf-like caves, lonely castles, long avenues of trees, green glades, shadowy demons and hoar-headed woodmen in it. It is not separately described ; it grov/s up, as the wood of Arden grows before us, from notes of woodland scat- tered among the action of the piece ; and a delightful example it is of an artist's work. There is, however, one little touch of direct descrip- 296 Tennyson tion of Nature in this Idyll which enables me, by con- trasting it with Coleridge's image of the same thing, to mark out a quality in Tennyson's natural description. There is a spring in the wood, and the spring makes a clear pool with a sandy bottom. Tennyson looks into the spring, and sees the sand leaping up under the water- glass, impelled by the fountain jet. Balin and Balan sit statuelike — To right and left the spring, that down From underneath a plume of lady fern Sang, and the sand danced at the bottom of it. The thing to be seen is perfectly clear, and no poet in the world could put it into a shorter phrase. This is Tennyson's brief, concise method, and it has its special value. And now let us hear Coleridge telling the same story of the spring and the dancing sand : This sycamore, oft musical with bees — Such tents the Patriarchs loved ! O long unharmed May all its aged boughs o'er-canopy The small round basin which this jutting stone Keeps pure from fallen leaves ! Long may the spring, Quietly as a sleeping infant's breath, Send up cold waters to the traveller With soft and even pulse ! Nor ever cease Yon tiny cone of sand its soundless dance Which at the bottom, like a Fairy's page. As merry and no taller, dances still. Nor wrinkles the smooth surface of the fount. The comparison of these, for the purpose of saying which is the best, would not be fair, for Tennyson, as I have said already, refrains deliberately in these stories, Idylls of the King 297 lest the human interest should be overwhelmed, from any set description of Nature ; and Coleridge has given himself wholly to such description. Nevertheless, the two pieces illustrate two methods — the concise and the expanded — of describing Nature ; and Tennyson, as he grew older, loved and used the concise method more and more. We meet very rarely in his later work anything like the long description of the land around the town of Lincoln in The Gardener' s Daughter. It was his way, and we are grateful for it ; but, on the whole, I love Coleridge's way better. It is more pleasant that the piece of Nature we have to see should be dwelt on with curious love, coloured as well as outlined, played with by the imagination, as when Coleridge turns the cone of sand into a fairy's page, as merry and no taller, dancing alone. This pleases more, and I feel in it the life that is in Nature more than in the other. But Tennyson is no less the artist than Coleridge, only he is an artist of an- other kind. We should feel ourselves happy to have these different musicians of Nature, whose varying har- monies fit our changing moods ; for it is not by saying that one poet is better than another that we shall win a good delight for ourselves, or learn how to see or com- pany with beauty. It is by loving each of them for his proper work, and by our gratitude to them all. There are two things which, according to Tennyson, break up the Table Round ; which first decay and then destroy the work of Arthur. The first of these is the 298 Tennyson lust of the flesh, and the second is mystic-ascetic re- ligion. Merlin and Vivien represents the first, and The Holy Grail the second. Tennyson expresses in them the set of his mind towards two recurring problems of soci- ety. He looked, and in the direst light, on the growth of sensuality, on the indifference to purity, on the loosening of the marriage vow, on the unchaste results of luxury of life, on the theory and practice of free love, as one of the worst evils, and perhaps the worst, which can inflict individual, social, and national life. The sin of Lancelot and Guinevere, which he takes care to rep- resent as induced by a love almost irresistible and as supported by unbroken faithfulness, and which does not therefore wholly destroy the noble elements in their characters, is nevertheless (though "the light that led astray seemed light from heaven," though every excuse that can be made for it is made) the primal cause of the ruin that follows. The sin of these two high-placed per- sons, however modified in them, initiated and licensed an unmodified guilt of a similar kind, and brought with it when it was committed by others not as noble as Lancelot or Guinevere, lightness of character, loose desire, scorn of truth and honesty in the things of love, and naturally in other matters ; and, finally, a luxurious life, in which the doing of justice and the support of good government were neglected for sensual enjoyment. There is a difference between Lancelot, faithful all his life to one love, and Gawain who lightly flies from one Idylls of the King 299 to another all his life ; between Lancelot, whose love was mingled with a vast remorse, and Tristram who in the Idyll of The Last Tournamettt has, in the airy cyni- cism of free loving, become careless of faithfulness, and then uncourteous towards the woman whom he once loved so well. Nevertheless, it was not in Tennyson's way to finally excuse Lancelot and Guinevere because they loved faithfully. He brings all the ruin back to them. It is their guilt also which made the invasion of the Court by Vivien possible — that is, through their love, with all its faithfulness, the lust of the flesh stole in, and the whole of society was corrupted. Again and again this point is made by Tennyson. No matter how seeming fair an unlicensed love may be, no matter how faithful and how deep, it ends in opening to others the door to sensuality, which itself has no faithfulness, no depth, and no enduring beauty. Guinevere is followed by Vivien, and Lancelot by Tristram. That is his view, and I give it without comment. It is part of the ethical message Tennyson chose to set forth for our society. But the state of things to which he finally brings Ar- thur's Court and realm — the state of which Vivien is the true queen — is not reached at once. There are reactions against it, and such a reaction is described in The Holy Grail. It was not a useful nor a permanent reaction, though it was a religious one. On the contrary, it did as much harm to the State and to Arthur's work as the sensualism. But then it would not have done so much 300 Tennyson harm had it not been for the previous existence of the sensualism. That had weakened not only individual moral power, but the collective force of righteous states- manship, so that work for the good of the whole people no longer seemed the best and wisest thing. It was bet- ter, men who were half repenting of a sinful life began to think, to pursue after a mystic and ascetic holiness than to live naturally in the present world and strive to make it wiser and happier. It was better, or pleasanter, to seek for supernatural excitements of religious passion than to confirm the good and deliver the oppressed and walk humbly with God in the common duties of home, society, and the State. This is only another form of sensualism, or its probable consequence. The unbridled life according to the senses induces a condition both of body and mind which cannot do without excitement. When, therefore, as in Arthur's realm, there is a reaction against sensualism and folk turn to religion, they de- mand a religion which replaces the sensual by a spiritual thrill, or by the excitement of the miraculous ; which revels in the mystic ectasies of ascetic purity ; which thinks that human love injures the love of God ; and which takes men and women away from their nearest duties. This, in Tennyson's mind, was a deadly misfortune, not only for the spiritual life of the individual, but for the civic life of societies. In making this clear, he spoke another part of what he conceived to be his mes- sage to his time. How far he was right is not the ques- Idylls of the King 301 tion here, but what he thought is. He was of the school of Maurice and Kingsley in this matter. He deliberately attacked in The Holy Grail, but with some of a poet's tolerance and pity, this kind of piety. He allowed the possibility of its truth and fitness in a few persons of the temper of Galahad and Percivale's sister. He abhorred it in the generality of men and women. Its origin was chiefly in the senses, and its end was the dissolution of all true work for mankind. This is the aim of The Holy Grail. Our question now is, In what manner, from the lit- erary point of view, has he done this double piece of work — this attack on impurity and on ascetic and sensa- tional religion ? For the work is not only allegorical, it is also a story ; not only symbolic but human. In what fashion, then, are wrought, first Merlin and Vivien and then The Holy Grail ? The conception of Vivien, from the allegorical point of view, is always careful and sometimes fine, and keeps close to the traditional symbolism of Luxuria. She is born of rebellion, that is, of disobedient pride. Her father dies fighting against Arthur. Her mother brings her forth on the battle-field, and, giving her birth, falls dead. She is thus cradled in bloody war, war for which there is no greater cause in all history than the lust of the flesh. She is also cradled in death : " Born from death am I," she says, " among the dead," for sin and death are woven together, warp and woof. The first of sins in the mind of the ancient Church is pride, and the 302 Tennyson second lust, and death is their child. Milton in his mighty symbolism makes Satan, immediately after his rebellion, give birth to Sin from his head, and then, burning for her beauty, beget Death upon her ; and Death, in turn, unites himself in unnatural guilt to his mother Sin. This is a horror terrible enough for the Titanic imagination of Milton. Tennyson's symbolism falls far below that huge conception ; but then his story interfered with his allegory, as his allegory interferes with his story. Vivien, thus bound up with death, causes physical war and death. She also leaves behind her moral death in men's souls, and death of law and order in States. Another symbolic touch is given when she says that she was " sown upon the wind." Perhaps Tennyson thought of the text, " They that sow the wind shall reap the whirlwind " ; but the main thought is the in- constancy and fierceness of the lust of the flesh, its veer- ing and flittering fancy, its tempest-wrath and fury at other times ; and it is in the yelling of the storm that Vivien has her way with Merlin. Then she is corrupted by Mark, king of Cornwall, whose life 'and Court are set opposite to Arthur's. Injustice, falsehood, cruelty are his characteristics, and out of these are born coarse cynicism in sensualism, and hatred of pure love. Vivien, under his tuition, is shown the truth betimes — That old true filth and bottom of the well Where Truth is hidden. Idylls of the King 303 Therefore when she hears of the vows of chastity at the Court of Arthur, she does not believe that a single one of the knights is pure. Absolute unbelief in good is part of the mere lust of the flesh. With it is hatred of those who differ from herself, and deep hatred makes her cruel, fearless, and deceitful. Then, there is noth- ing she does so easily as lying, and the lying, combined with hatred and unbelief of goodness, causes her to be the furious slanderer, or the soft-sliding suggester of slander. This is Tennyson's outline of sensuality and of its attendant sins. This allegorical outline is filled up carefully, and in nothing better than in Vivien's sincerity. She makes a bold defence of the lust of the flesh being the proper god and king of the world. Of this god she is the wor- shipper, the priestess, and the missionary. There is a song of hers in Balin and Balan which glorifies the fire of the appetites and senses. It might have been writ- ten for the worship of Astarte, and it is splendidly imagined by Tennyson. It sets the sensual side of pagan Nature-worship into the keenest contrast with the self-control of Christianity. The fire from heaven she speaks of is not the holy fire of the pure spirit ; it is the fire of that heaven which some have conceived, and which consists in the full enjoyment of desire. It is this blaze of desire which she sees in all Nature as well as in man, and it creates, she thinks, the real beauty of the world. Tennyson got to the heart of the thing in this exultant pagan song. Take the two last verses : 304 Tennyson The fire of Heaven is on the dusty ways. The wayside blossoms open to the blaze. The whole wood-world is one full peal of praise. The fire of Heaven is not the flame of Hell. The fire of Heaven is lord of all things good, And starve not thou this fire within thy blood, But follow Vivien thro' the fiery flood ! The fire of Heaven is not the flame of Hell ! Then turning to her squire : ' ' This fire of Heaven, This old sun-worship, boy, will rise again. And beat the cross to earth, and break the King And all his Table." * This is Vivien as she is — honest, true, and bold, con- fessing evil and rejoicing in it. The whole sketch of her in Balm and Balan is of this strain of triumphant daring. Her tale of slander about the Queen is there delivered with a ring of conquest in it. Her mocking of her boy squire and of Balan has the bravery of a Queen of sin. She laughs loud at the fools of knights who have cast away their lives when they were goodly enough to have " cropt the myriad flower of May." She has not only no pity, but active cruelty. Come, she cries to her squire, I cannot brook to look upon those wounded to the death — leave them to the wolves. It is a fine sketch — better, I think, than anything con- tained in Vivien and Merlin itself. In that Idyll Vivien * See in The Holy Grail what the Paynim people say to Sir Bors : What other fire than he Whereby the blood beats, and the blossom blows. And the sea rolls, and all the world is warmed. Idylls of the King 305 comes to the Court. She creeps and whispers through it, sowing the seeds of slander and of her own impurity. She leavens the lowest characters, as Arthur does the highest. She fixes the scandal of Lancelot and Guine- vere in all men's minds ; and finally flies away with Merlin that she may destroy his use and name and fame by the spell which consigns him to a living tomb. The incarnation of the pure intellect is ruined by the lust of the flesh. There is no need to tell the story of this Idyll. It is excessively disagreeable, but it is chiefly disagree- able because its form is ill-conceived. The main tale is as old as humanity. It is the tale of knowledge, of experience, of philosophy made foolish in old age by a woman, that she may gain the glory of a con- quest at which she will laugh for a week with the young. It is so common that it has formed one of the folk-tales of the world. The most famous of these is the bridling and saddling of Aristotle by the mistress of Alexander, and her riding the philosopher up and down the garden paths in the sight of the king. Tennyson re-invents this common tale, and his way of doing it is open to the gravest criticism. There are noble episodes in the poem, passages of fine ethical quality, passages of creative imagination ; but as a whole, and especially in the conceptions of Merlin and Vivien, it is not only in the wrong, but unpleasantly in the wrong. Vivien almost ceases to be allegorical, and is repre- sented as a woman. She is endurable as long as she 3o6 Tennyson symbolises the Lust of the flesh. We know that in the realm of allegory the personification of Luxuria must be made devoid of any possibility of good. But when Vivien is made a woman, as in this Idyll, she is detest- able. Absolute falsehood, unredeemed meanness," mo- tiveless malignity," are not found in sane humanity, and Vivien is all the three. She is not a woman at all. Not even the very worst of her type was ever like her. This na- tive inhumanity makes her ways and speeches unnatural, and because unnatural, vulgar. All the art of the piece, because of this error in form by which Vivien the wo- man is confused with Vivien as Luxuria, is not good in art. The immense skill Tennyson bestows upon it is wasted. The conception of Merlin is equally unnatural. The story of an old man allured to his ruin by a young woman is in itself almost too disagreeable for art to take as a subject ; but if it be taken, it ought to be kept within nature ; it ought not to be made revolting ; it ought to be excused and made piteous by a kind of mad- ness in the man. And this is done in the original tale in Malory. Merlin there falls into a dotage ; he is " assot- ted " by one of the Ladies of the Lake. Love in an old man, the most miserable and cruel of all the forms of passion, turns the wise magician into a fool ; and the Lady of the Lake, herself quite pure, but weary to death of him, works the spell upon him and buries him under a rock. This is natural and human, and it wakens our sorrow and pity ; moreover, it excuses the man and the woman. But Tennyson has chosen to work it otherwise. Idylls of the King 307 Merlin is not in love ; he only wavers on the verge of affection. He has not lost his senses or his sense. He is as wise as ever ; he sees through Vivien ; he even hates her character, her slander, and her foulness of soul ; he suspects she wants to destroy his use and fame and name — and yet he yields. Up to the last moment he is in full possession of his good sense, and then he is swept away by the woman's importunity, by a momentary warming of his blood. He is made by this, not an ob- ject of pity, but of contempt. Had he been in love, he would have been a fool as Vivien calls him ; but he would have been assotted, in a dotage from the be- ginning. As it is, he is not mad, not a fool, but he is suddenly self-degraded. And yet he says nothing base, which makes the art of the piece all the worse. The conditions and the position are out of Nature ; or, if such a thing can be in Nature, it is too improbable for art to use as a subject, and too ugly. Of course, to make such a conception endurable at all, the greatest intellectual skill has to be employed, and Tennyson labours at the situation he has invented. It is done by the understanding, not by the imagination ; for the imagination would refuse to work at this false conception. The speeches Merlin and Vivien make are concocted, not created. The worst of them are Vivien's. Tennyson had some notion of what the man would say, but he did not know what the woman — and especially this type of woman — was likely to say. His ignorance of such women does not make his Avork better. Never- 3o8 Tennyson theless, in the midst of this main current of the story there are islands of noble poetry ; and there are episodes, apart from the story, which belong to the pure imagina- tion. One part, even of Vivien's representation, is ad- mirable. It is her outburst of false tenderness, during which she sings the song of " Trust me not at all, or all in all," which begins : In love, if love be love, if love be ours, Faith and unfaith can ne'er be equal powers ; Unfaith in aught is want of faith in all. It is the little rift within the lute That by and by will make the music mute. And, ever widening, slowly silence all. This song is excellent in its representation of half-true, half-false sentiment, and for the subtle way in which the false sentiment in it is made to overtop the true. It is all the more excellent when we contrast it with that true rendering of Vivien by herself in the song which extols the fire of the Pagan heaven. Merlin detects its masked untruthfulness, and sets over against it the song he once heard sung by a young knight in the early days of Arthur's reign, when they projected the founding of the Round Table for love of God and men. This is a lovely, clarion-versed passage — one of the brilliantly invented episodes which occur in this Idyll : Far other was the song that once I heard By this huge oak, sung nearly where we sit : For here we met, some ten or twelve of us. To chase a creature that was current then Idylls of the King 309 In these wild woods, the hart with golden horns. It was the time when first the question rose About the founding of a Table Round, That was to be, for love of God and men And noble deeds, the flower of all the world. And each incited each to noble deeds. And while we waited, one, the youngest of us, We could not keep him silent, out he flash'd. And into such a song, such fire for fame. Such trumpet-blowings in it, coming down To such a stern and iron-clashing close, That when he stopt we long'd to hurl together, And should have done it ; but the beauteous beast. Scared by the noise upstarted at our feet. And like a silver shadow slipt away Thro' the dim land ; and all day long we rode Thro' the dim land against a rushing wind. That glorious roundel echoing in our ears, And chased the flashes of his golden horns Until they vanish'd by the fairy well That laughs at iron. A speech of Merlin's follows, on true love and fame, and their relation each to each, worthy of the study of all men and women, and done in Tennyson's weightiest and fullest manner. The more excellent it is in itself, the more it reveals the unnaturalness of the main conception. That Merlin should so speak, and an hour afterwards yield as he yielded, shocks both intelligence and feeling. But the speech is not only good ; it is also personally interesting. It tells us Tennyson's thoughts about his fame, and his desire to have his fame in the use that his poetry may be to the world. Merlin's memory of what he felt when he looked as a young man on the second star in the dagger of Orion, is so particular a recollection 3IO Tennyson that I cannot but imagine that Tennyson is relating a story of himself : A single misty star, Which is the second in a line of stars That seem a sword beneath a belt of three — I never gazed upon it but I dreamt Of some vast charm concluded in that star To make fame nothing. If this conjecture be true, we see the poet in his youth, dreaming of fame and yet controlling his dreams. It is Tennyson all over, and this sober self-control, standing guard over fervent imagination, is one of the secrets of his power. But the most brilliant of the episodes, happy in invention, vivid in imaginative treatment, is the story Merlin tells of his magic book and of the origin of the spell by which he is finally overcome. Moreover, in dispraising the drawing of Merlin under Vivien's temptation we should not forget to praise the drawing of his state of mind at the beginning ; the melancholy for himself and the world that fell upon him in dark and dim presentiment, and the illustrations from Nature by which it is imaged. Merlin before his vanishing, and in the prophetic air of death, sees all the woe that is to be, all the fates of Arthur's kingdom : Then fell on Merlin a great melancholy : He walk'd with dreams and darkness, and he found A doom that ever poised itself to fall. An ever-moaning battle in the mist, World-war of dying flesh against the life, Death in all life and lying in all love, The meanest having power upon the highest, And the high purpose broken by the worm. Idylls of the King 311 This is greatly conceived and felt, and equal to it in poetic power — one of Tennyson's most subtle and splen- did illustrations — is this — So dark a forethought roU'd about his brain As on a dull day in an ocean cave The blind wave feeling round his long sea-hall In silence. The full power of human imagination is added in those lines to the business of the sea, and lifts the thing into a great nobility ; while in his next illustration of the same presentiment he describes exactly what many have seen but few observed : O did ye never lie upon the shore, And watch the curl'd white of the coming wave Glass'd in the slippery sand before it breaks ? Ev'n such a wave, but not so pleasurable, Dark in the glass of some presageful mood, Had I for three days seen, ready to fall. It remains to say one word of the scenery of the piece and of its close. We are in the wild forest of Broceliande in Brittany. Great meadows, full of buttercups, fill the space between the sea and the huge wood. The wood is of ancient oaks ; in it there are glades, and sweet springs dropping from the rocky clefts, and fairy wells ; and Merlin and Vivien sit near a hollow oak, the same, perhaps, that Heine saw. There the storm over- takes them, and they refuge in the hollow tree. As the lightning leaps and the thunder peals, Vivien flies into Merlin's arms and has her way : 3 1 2 Tennyson And ever overhead Bellow'd the tempest, andthe rotten branch Snapt in the rushing of the river-rain Above them. It is a habit of Tennyson's, as I have said before, to make Nature reflect the passions of man, and the end of Vivien is no exception to this common rule. The Idyll of Lancelot and Elaine follows that of Merlin and Vivien. Woven in and out of it is the story of the development to which the love of Lancelot and Guinevere had now attained, and this is one of the best and most human pieces of work in the Idylls. I will, however, keep it for a more fitting place. The character of Elaine herself and her story can be put with brevity, and it is not difficult to see why Elaine follows Vivien. Elaine is set over against Vivien in the fullest con- trast. As the root of Vivien is conscious guilt, so the root of Elaine is unconscious innocence. As Vivien has the boldness of Hate derived from lust, so Elaine has the boldness of Love derived from purity. Vivien lives in the dry, clear world of cynicism. Not one wavering mist of fancy clouds her cruel eyes — not one imagination of love touches her. Elaine lives in a world of dim fantasy and all the fantasy is born of love. She was happy, not knowing she was happy, till she saw Sir Lancelot. Then she loved, and loved for her death. She is the Lady of Shalott (Shalott is Astolat) over again, but with a tender difference : Idylls of the King 313 Out flew the web and floated wide, The mirror cracked from side to side, " The curse is come upon me," cried The Lady of Shalott. Vivien lives, Elaine dies — it is the way of this world. But Elaine begins in joy. Lancelot, riding in secrecy to the jousts for the diamond, comes to Astolat, the castle of Elaine's father, and leaves his shield, since its emblazonings would reveal who he was, behind him. And Elaine, who having seen him once, has loved him at first sight and for ever, keeps the shield in her chamber, and with the creative fancy of a maiden, weaves histories over every dint and scratch made in it, conjecturing when and where : This cut is fresh ; That ten years back ; this dealt him at Caerlyle ; That at Caerleon ; this at Camelot ; And ah, God's mercy, what a stroke was there ! " So she lived in fantasy" — and a beautiful and true picture it is of a young girl's heart ! If the dreams of young imagination, as Wordsworth sings, keep pure the heart, the pure heart of youth has lovelier imaginations than any experience of life can bring, sweeter and more varied fantasies than any genius that has sinned and sorrowed. But they are always silent. Tennyson has seen clearly this beautiful thing. In all his work there is nothing truer to womanhood than his picture of Elaine; and true to that moment of womanhood so difficult to represent, when the girl, suddenly touched by a great love, becomes the woman. If here and there the alle- 314 Tennyson gorical element enters into her, it is not obtrusive, and it is a comfort to be freed from it. This is a real woman : not symbolic, but human. Her blood is eloquent upon her cheek ; she lives most keenly when she dies. Her movements are thoughts, her thoughts are passions. Her dead body speaks. She is a true creation. Nor do I know anything in his work more tender than her character, her love, and her fate. The tender- ness of Tennyson is one of his remarkable qualities — not so much in itself, for other poets have been more tender — but in combination with his rough power. We are not surprised that his rugged strength is capable of the mighty and tragic tenderness of Rizpah, but we do not think at first that he could feel and realise the exquisite tenderness of Elaine. But, no : both are in his capacity. It is a wonderful thing to have so wide a ten- derness, and only a great poet can possess and use it well. Moreover, with the power of delicate tenderness goes subtlety of treatment ; and Elaine was exceedingly difficult to do with sufficient fineness of touch. Her innocent boldness might well have become unmaidenly. She does not conceal her love ; she lets Lancelot see it ; she strives to make him hers ; finally, she confesses her love to him, she will be anything to him — if not his wife, to follow him as servant. Then suddenly and passionately she spoke : " I have gone mad. I love you ; let me die." " Ah, sister,'' answer'd Lancelot, " what is this?" And innocently extending her white arms, "Your love," she said, " your love — to be your wife." Idylls of the King 315 And Lancelot answer'd : " Had I chosen to wed I had been wedded earlier, sweet Elaine ; But now there never will be wife of mine." " No, no," she cried, " I care not to be wife. But to be with you still, to see your face. To serve you, and to follow you thro' the world." She rises to the very verge of innocent maidenliness in passionate love, but she does not go over the verge. And to be on the verge, and not pass beyond it, is the very peak of innocent girlhood when seized by overmastering love. It was as difficult to represent Elaine as to represent Juliet ; and Tennyson has succeeded well where Shakspere has succeeded beautifully. It is great praise, but it is well de- served. Moreover, had her love been commonplace, if true love is ever commonplace, she might have been somewhat injured in our eyes. But the greatness of Lancelot excuses her. She loves no young carpet- knight, but the noblest ; gaunt with battles without, and his face marred with fierce battles within. He wins her heart as Othello won Desdemona by telling of glorious wars, and few battle-passages are finer than Tennyson's rapid and fierce sketch on Lancelot's lips of the twelve great battles, and finally of Arthur standing after the last fight on the top of Mount Badon : High on a heap of slain, from spur to plume Red as the rising sun with heathen blood, I never saw his like, there lives No greater leader. 3i6 Tennyson " Save your great self, fair lord," said Elaine to her heart. And next morning he rode away, wearing her favour, which her innocent daring asked him to carry, and leaving her his shield. When she hears of his dreadful wound — Through her own side she felt the sharp lance go. It is a line of which Shakspere might be proud. When Gawain asks for her love, she is not ashamed to tell him she loves Lancelot. She cannot rest at home, having heard of his wound, and begs her father to let her go and tend on Lancelot. It is a lovely passage, and she woos her father to her will as sweetly as a bird sings ; and then, going, she hears in her heart : Being so very wilful you must die. And her conviction that she will die of her love excuses all her devotion to one who does not care for her. When to the world she would seem unwomanly, she is most womanly. Certainty of death dissolves conven- tions. When she sees Lancelot she utters A little tender dolorous cry ; and when he kisses her as we kiss a child, it is more to her : At once she slipt like water to the floor : And all her heart's sad secret blazed itself In the heart's colours on her simple face. And, having tended him into health, she tells her love, and he offers her all friendship and its offices. " Of all Idylls of the King 317 this will I nothing," she cries, and, swooning, is borne to her tower-room, and Lancelot rides away. All this is beautifully, intimately conceived. Nor is her death less graciously, less powerfully wrought. These are lovely lines which tell of her lonely watch at night : Death, like a friend's voice from a distant field Approaching thro' the darkness, call'd : the owl's Wailing had power upon her, and she mixt Her fancies with the sallow-rifted glooms Of evening, and the raoanings of the wind. And the song that follows, how simply wrought it is, and yet how subtly — with the subtlety of long passion's interwoven thought : Sweet is true love tho' given in vain, in vain ; And sweet is death who puts an end to pain ; I know not which is sweeter, no, not I . Love, art thou sweet ? then bitter death must be : Love, thou art bitter ; sweet is death to me. love, if death be sweeter, let me die. Sweet love, that seems not made to fade away, Sweet death, that seems to make us loveless clay, 1 know not which is sweeter, no, not I. I fain would follow love, if that could be ; I needs must follow death, who calls for me : Call and I follow, I follow ! let me die. This is almost like a piece out of the sonnets of Shak- spere, full of his to-and-fro play with words that are thoughts ; with the same kind of all-pervading emotion in the lines ; the same truth to the situation and the 3i8 Tennyson character of the singer ; and with Tennyson's deep- seated waters of love — which too rarely come to the surface — welling upwards in it. That which follows is almost at the same level : High with the last line scaled her voice, and this, All in a fiery dawning wild with wind That shook her tower, her brothers heard, and thought With shuddering, " Hark the Phantom of the house That ever shrieks before a death,'' and call'd The father, and all three in hurry and fear Ran to her, and lo ! the blood-red light of dawn Flared on her face, she shrilling, " Let me die.'' Then, out of that great passion she entered into quie- tude, and set forth her funeral, becoming in her memory a little child again. For she remembers how often she wished to pass the poplar on the stream, and might not ; but now she will, laid in her boat, pass beyond it, dead, and so sail with her dying message to Lancelot into the very palace of the King. Therefore, this being prom- ised her, and saying many beautiful things of trust and honour, in innocence and cheerfulness she dies. A fair life and a fair death ! It is sorrowful, but she had her joy. She loved ; she loved one worthy of her love, and her heart made him worthier still. Of him she believed no wrong, for in herself there was no wrong. Her innocence was more than earth could bear, and it was well it was borne away to heaven. None may dare to mourn her fate ; it was as blest as the heart of Love could make it. There are, like her, rare souls on earth so wonderfully fortunate in their fate that our troubled Idylls of the King 319 hearts cannot imagine their happiness ; and she was one of these. Our pity is with Lancelot, with Guinevere, with Arthur, but not with her. The story of the Holy Grail, the Holy Vessel, traces its origins back to a remote antiquity. The oldest ele- ments of the tale were Celtic (chiefly Irish), and their symbolism was not Christian, but heathen. Two sets of stories, according to Mr. Nutt, were the starting-point of the Grail legend. In the first set a kinsman avenged a blood-feud by means of three magic talismans — the sword, the lance, and the vessel ; in the second set the hero visits a castle under a spell, and finds all its in- dwellers fed by a magic vessel, and living by its means a prolonged life ; from which fortune or misfortune they are freed by the hero asking a question about the vessel. When these two tales were mixed up with the tale of Arthur, they were thrown together into one story. The Grail, the sword, and the lance mingle in this one story all the powers they have in both the series of tales. The two castles become one castle. But the most important amalgamating element (which was sure to run both stories into one) was that both the castles — that to which the avenger goes to find lance and sword for his work, and that to which the hero goes to set free from the spell those who are kept immortal by the vessel — are both symbols in the original Celtic tales of one and the same thing — of the other world, the fairy-land of eternal youth. How this single story came to be Christianised 320 Tennyson is a question which still remains under debate. But it is plain that when it became Christian in Britain it had a local habitation. It had housed itself in Glastonbury, where possibly under Welsh rule a small heathen temple dedicated to Bran was transformed into a Christian church. Bran in Celtic mythology was the ruler of the Other World and would have in his charge these talis- mans : the sword, the lance, and the cup. When the temple became the church, Bran was turned into a saint, and his magic gear naturally takes a Christian meaning ; and the first notion of the cup and the lance as con- nected with Jesus, the feeder of His people, whose blood saved them, and whose side was pierced by the lance, would then arise. That is, the characteristics of Bran the heathen god of the far-off world of eternal youth, and the gear that he possessed, were transferred to Jesus, and fitted to the story of the Gospel. Then an addition to this, and a modification, were made from the legend of Joseph of Arimathea in the Gospel of Nicodemus, a gospel which had a great vogue in England in early English times. A fuller Christian import was given to the Grail from the story of Jesus in that gospel. The Grail is now the dish used at the Last Supper, and that with which Joseph caught the last drop of blood which fell from the side or the feet of Christ. Joseph, thrown into prison, is supernaturally fed from this sacred vessel for forty-two years. The next step is when a British legend brings Joseph to Britain, and the Grail is laid up at Glastonbury. Idylls of the King 321 Joseph takes the place now of Bran. After his death, the Grail is hidden from men, until the destined knight appears who is to achieve its Quest. Then its meaning further developed. It became the symbol of the might- iest miracle of the Roman Church, of the change of the body and blood of Jesus into the substance of the bread and wine. Thence arose the great and fruitful concep- tion of the search for the Holy Grail as the search for absolute union with Christ. A few, now and again, behold it. It seems a crystal cup with rose-red beatings as of a heart in it, and with it is often a platter on which bread lies, into which bread a white child smites himself. It holds then the body and blood of God. When the knights of Arthur see it in the hall, it appears covered ; thunderings and lightnings attend it, and the roofs rack and rive as it passes by. The heroes leap to their feet, and swear that for a year and a day they will take up the Quest to see it uncovered. This is only one form of the manifold tales of this Holy Quest. A hundred poets took it up, and wove round it the romantic adventures of a hundred knights. The people loved it for its adven- tures ; the Church loved it, for it brought, by means of the tale, all the poetic enjoyment of the people into close contact with the central doctrine of the Church of Rome. There is one more thing to say. Before the Grail embodied the full sacramental meaning it had, while it was yet half heathen and half Christian, Percivale is the hero of the Quest ; but when the notion of absolute chas- 322 Tennyson tity, of total division from women as the necessity for perfect union with Christ, spread far and wide, Percivale I) was not pure enough to achieve the Quest, and Galahad, j the virgin in body and soul, was invented. A new series of tales having Galahad as hero, and glorifying virginity, now arose. To this there was one exception. When the story of the Grail was used by Wolfram von Eschen- bach in Germany, we find Percivale in his pre-eminent position ; and Tennyson, in this Idyll, reverts as it were unconsciously to the original importance of Percivale.* It is Percivale that tells the story — we see Galahad through his eyes. Nevertheless it is the virgin Galahad alone who in the Idylls fully wins the Quest, who not only always sees the Grail, but finally goes with it to that spiritual city which is the Christian representative of the Welsh Avalon, and also of the Irish Tir-na-nogue, the land of undying youth. So far Tennyson clings to the ecclesiastical form of the tale. But though he accepted the virginity of Gala- had as necessary for the achieving of the Quest, the-^^ spirit of his poem is whole leagues away from the ideal * This is a remark of Mr. Nutt in his delightful book on The Holy Grail. I have followed his explanation of the development of the Grail story— an explanation largely, it should be noted, hypo- thetical, owing to the nature of the evidence upon which the student must rely. This caution applies with especial force to that portion of the hypothesis which assumes the conversion of a heathen Bran into the Christian Bron. It may be added, however, that although con- siderable research has been bestowed upon the Grail legend since the appearance of Mr. Nutt's book (1888), no alternative hypothesis has been propounded that has won the acceptance of scholars. Idylls of the King 323 of the Galahad-romances which glorified a life of com- plete spiritual asceticism, and which, conceiving that woman was the great plague and evil matter of the world, made this hero reject, as deadly to spiritual perfection, human love and marriage. That was not the ideal of Wolfram in the Parsifal. Parsifal in Wolfram's poem is the ideal king who marries the woman he loves and completes his life in her, whose work is to stay in the world, and to make it better by noble government. Tennyson takes this line in the Idylls., but he is plainer than Wolfram, for Wolfram only lets us infer his view. Tennyson deliberately sets him- self to make an allegory, the meaning of which shall be — That ascetic religion, an exciting pursuit of signs and wonders, severance from home and from the common love of man and woman, and a retreat from the daily work of the world into cloistered seclusion or in pursuit of a supernatural spiritualism, are, save for a few ex- ceptional characters, entirely evil. These things dissolve societies, injure human life, and produce the very evils they are invented to overcome. The opposite life to that, the life of Arthur, is the right life. In this modern re-making of the legend of the Holy Grail the symbolism of the story is wheeled right round by Tennyson. The search for the Holy Grail is a mis- take ; an evil, not a good. The true life is to bring heaven to earth for others ; the untrue, to seek, apart from earth, a heaven for one's self. Nevertheless, like the wisest poets who are not intolerant of all theories of 324 Tennyson life but their own, nor ignorant of the variousness of man, Tennyson allows that there may be a few for whom this virgin, ascetic, spiritual life is fitted, and who per- form, in that life, their own special work of representing before mankind the ideal Holiness, the immortal quest of perfection. And he chooses to put this point in the persons of Percivale's sister and Sir Galahad.* Percivale's sister is admirably drawn, all the main characteristics of the mystic female saint, like Catherine of Siena, are embodied in her ; and the picture is made by scattered touches given with apparent lightness through the story. She was no cold-hearted maid. The type of which she is the image has a passionate temper- ament : * I think there is more in it than this. The image of the stainless knight, wholly apart from sex and appetite, divided from the ma- terial interests of the world, a pure spirit clothed for a time in flesh, but the flesh so refined by the spirit that it becomes archangelic matter, a. terrible crystal of pure love, moving in the supernat- ural world, with all its powers round him, while yet on earth — this image, independent altogether of ascetic theology, was one of the finest "motives " art could have ; and its artistic elements were a great part of the reason why it entered the heart of the world and lodged there. Wolfram's Parsifal drops to a lower level of art be- cause he did not use this ' ' motive. " When Wagner imagined the Par- sifal, he felt an artist's need of this motive, and he restored this other-world purity to Percivale. When Tennyson took up the story, he preserved this virgin, spotless ideal of Galahad, even though his view of human life and duty was opposed to the ascetic life connected with it. He could not miss the dazzling ideal of Galahad as an art-subject. The artist, as it were against the man's will, was stronger in him than the social moralist. Galahad remains Galahad. Tennyson even adds another image of the same conception in a woman, in the sister of Percivale. Idylls of the King 325 A holy maid — tho' never maiden glow'd, But that was in her earlier maidenhood, With such a fervent flame of human love. This passion, rudely blunted, turned to an ardent longing for union with Christ. In that longing all that was earthly in her wasted away, till in her eyes alone shone fire, the spiritual fire of holiness that had power to awaken in others the same desire : And so she pray'd and fasted, till the sun Shone, and the wind blew, thro' her, and I thought She might have risen and floated when I saw her. At last she sees the vision, and she sees it through her own high-wrought and delicate passion. It comes, at- tended by such music as an ethereal ear might hear — as of a silver horn far off, blown o'er the hills, a slender sound, unlike all earthly music. And when the Grail streams through the cell, the beam down which it steals is silver-cold, as the maiden heart that sees it ; but the Grail is rose-red ; in it are rosy beatings as of a living heart, and the white walls of the cell are dyed with rosy colours. Cold to earth, ecstatic to heaven ; it is the very vision of a mystic maiden's passionate purity. And the verses are fitted to the vision. Then, recognising a kin- dred soul in Galahad, she weaves a belt for him out of her hair, and speaks to him in the language of earthly love, yet there is no earth in it. " My knight, my love, my knight of heaven, O thou, my love, whose love is one with mine, I, maiden, round thee, maiden, bind my belt. 326 Tennyson Go forth, for thou shalt see what I have seen, And break thro' all, till one will crown thee king Far in the spiritual city : " and, as she spake, She sent the deathless passion in her eyes Thro' him, and made him hers, and laid her mind On him, and he believed in her belief. From point to point, the representation embodies the whole type, gathering together into one personahty many characteristics of separate enthusiasts. Galahad is different. He sees the same glory, but he does not retire from the world, save in spirit. He is still the warrior. He has courage to sit in the " Perilous Seat," in which whosoever sits, loses himself. Merlin was lost in it, seating himself in it inadvertently. But Galahad, claiming loss of self as salvation — and the whole passage with Tennyson's spiritual meaning in it is his own invention — sits in it of set purpose, crying, " If I lose myself, I find myself," and sees the Holy Grail. After that, day by day, the thing is always with him : " Fainter by day, but always in the night Blood-red, and sliding down the blacken'd marsh Blood-red, and on the naked mountain-top Blood-red, and in the sleeping mere below Blood-red." But it companies with him, not to send him to the cloister, but to war. " I rode," he cries, " Shattering all evil customs everywhere, And past thro' Pagan realms and made them mine, And clashed thro' Pagan hordes and bore them down, And broke thro' all, and in the strength of this Came victor." Idylls of the King 327 His hour has now come to be crowned in the spiritual city, and he bids Percivale go with him, and see his departure. In conception, in invention, in description of invented landscape, and in artistic work, this passing of Galahad is splendidly written. It is too long to quote in full, too knit together to be spoiled by extracts, and too poetic to criticise. It is its own best criticism.* This great and lofty vision of the glory of the pure spiritual life, refined and thrilled by heavenly holiness into full union with the world beyond the sense, and need- ing no death to enter into the perfect life, is done as no one has done this kind of work since Dante. It is made all the more vivid, and its unfitness for the common toil of good- ness on this earth is shown, by the contrast which Tenny- son immediately makes to it in the daily life of the poor monk Ambrosius, who knows nought of marvels, but is the providence of the little village near which he lives ; who does not understand these unearthly visions, but * This beginning I may quote. Whoever has seen, while involved in it, n fierce thunderstorm on a mountain-top, and the pine-forests below smitten by the quick-gleaming bolt, will know with what extra- ordinary truth and force Tennyson has made it. There rose a hill that none but man could climb, Scarr'd with a hundred wintry watercourses — Storm at the top, and when we gain'd it, storm Round us and death ; for every moment glanced His silver arms and gloom'd: so quick and thick The lightnings here and there to left and right Struck, till the dry old trunks about us, dead, Yea, rotten with a hundred years of death, Sprang into fire. 328 Tennyson who pities the men who, having known the sweetness of love, surrender it for dreams. His head swims when he reads of ecstasies and dreams, and then " I go forth," he says, " and pass Down to the little thorpe that lies so close, And almost plaster'd like a martin's nest To these old walls — and mingle with our folk ; " And the delightful description, which follows these lines, of the work of this small, comfortable and comforting village priest shows not only how Tennyson liked this type, but also marks the range of a poet who could, as it were in one breath, write the sublime passing of Gala- had and, immediately after, this homely, loving sketch of a small monk's life in a small world. These then, Percivale's sister and Galahad, were the two, woman and man, who might attain the vision of the perfect love through utter separation from the flesh — that is, in the Christian idea, through loss of self. But, in attaining it, they were ravished from earth and the work of earth. All men and women were as phantoms to them. They left behind them the impression of ex- celling purity, and that was good ; but it was purity severed from humanity, and that was not good. But as to the rest of the knights, who made their vow to see the vision of the Grail, the greater number failed to see, but did not fail to be useless. They " followed wandering fires," lost themselves, and were lost to men. A few saw something, but not the whole. The vision Idylls of the King 329 comes to each according to the soul of each. Lancelot, who has made the vow to seek the vision of pure holi- ness and love, while his heart loves his sin, sees the Grail covered, but sees it as holy wrath and fire, as swift and stern condemnation. That which is sweet and gentle to Galahad — the light of which is soft rose, and the colour and the music of which is as of a silver horn among far hills to the sister of Percivale — is to Lancelot a stormy glare, a heat As from a seventimes-heated furnace, from which he swoons, blasted, and burnt, and blinded. We hear how the others fared, according to their character. But however the vision came or did not come, the pursuit of it, as Tennyson thought, was the ruin of noble associa- tion for just government, the contradiction and not the realisation of true religion. It breaks up the Round Table. The kingdom is left without its defenders, and when the remnant return they are exhausted. Their fail- ure to reach ideal goodness has made them reckless, and drives them into base materialism. That which was left of truth and purity in the court lessens day by day. Sensuality, in swift reaction from asceticism, has full sway, and the fall is rapid. But where then, Tennyson asks, is spirituality to be found, where pure holiness, and love which beholds the invisible kingdom ? It is to be found where Arthur found it, in the midst of human life, in honest love of men, in doing our duty where God has placed us. 330 Tennyson Arthur, who represents this view of Tennyson, has, he says, his own visions. He has more. He sees God, not as a vision, but face to face. He does not wander on the quest of the Holy Grail, but He whose sacrifice of love the Holy Grail embodied is always with him. So says the King, and Percivale, less spiritual in his ascetic solitude than Arthur, does not "know all he meant." For, and I quote the passage, it is Tennyson's summing up of all the Idyll and its allegory : ' ' Some among you held, that if the King Had seen the sight he would have sworn the vow ; Not easily, seeing that the King must guard That which he rules, and is but as the hind To whom a space of land is given to plow. Who may not wander from the allotted field Before his work be done ; but, being done, Let visions of the night or of the day Come, as they will ; and many a time they come, Until this earth he walks on seems not earth. In moments when he feels he cannot die And knows himself no vision to himself. Nor the high God a vision, nor that One Who rose again : ye have seen what ye have seen." So spake the King ; I knew not all he meant. I turn now to the literary quality of this poem. I have written at large concerning its allegory, because this Idyll, unlike the rest, is pure allegory. It does not come under the objection I have made to the others in which the allegory and the story are mixed together to the troubling of both. In this Idyll the story is Tenny- Idylls of the King 331 son's own ; he has invented it for the sake of his alle- gory. The form then is excellent, and the excellence of the form has acted throughout upon the minor inven- tions within the main invention, on the verse, the meta- phors, and the details. It is good from beginning to end ; and the most unexceptional piece of work that Tennyson has done in the Idylls. Criticism has nothing to object to ; it is lost in admiration and respect. The framework of the tale could not be better con- ceived. Sir Percivale who has known the great world tells the story to Ambrosius, a simple brother of the monastery who knows nothing but his village. This invention enables Tennyson constantly to contrast the exalted with the simple type of mind, the earth-loving with the heaven-loving soul. Again we hear in the remarks of Ambrosius the same views as those which Arthur held concerning the Quest, given, not in the high words of the King, but in the simple thoughts of the uneducated monk who loved the daily life of men. This was a happy thought of the artist. It leads up to and doubles the force of Arthur's view of the matter — that is, of Tennyson's decision of the whole question. An inner unity is also given to the story and to its various episodes, which otherwise would be too uncon- nected, by their being knit up into the one tale of Per- civale. We never lose the image of the quiet, war-worn knight, sitting with Ambrosius in the cloister. Even the unity of place is thus preserved. The great adventures and the great adventurers, the city of Camelot, the 332 Tennyson pictured hall and the fierce vision of the Grail that went through it, the ride of Percivale, the passing of Gala- had, the wild voyage of Lancelot, are all brought into the still enclosure where the two peaceful figures sit in the sun. There, Beneath a world-old yew-tree, darkening half The cloisters, on a gustful April mom That puff'd the swaying branches into smoke * Above them, ere the summer when he died. The monk Ambrosius question 'd Percivale. Then, step by step, every episode in order, each illus- trating one another, each in its right place to advance and clinch the conclusion, the story, or rather the alle- gory in the story, flows on with such ease and simplicity, that it seems to grow like a tree by its own divine vitality. And each episode has the quality, character, and power of its chief personage stamped upon it and ruling its manner of representation, its invention, its wording, and even its rhythm. I have quoted enough from the story of Percivale's sister and Sir Galahad to prove the splendour of the invention. Even when the story is not quite new, as in the case of Lancelot's voyage to Carbonek, it is so * The stamen-bearing flowers of the yew are covered with an abundant yellow pollen, which the wind disperses. Each flower sends up its little puff of sulphur-coloured smoke. Thus the pistil- bearing flowers which, like small acorns, grow apart from the stamen- bearing ones, receive the pollen. This smoking of the yew, which belongs more to March than April, seized on Tennyson's observing fancy. He added a stanza to In Memoriam in order to use it in the poem, [xxxix.] Idylls of the King 333 entirely recast that it becomes a fresh pleasure — recast, not only for the sake of the allegory, but also for the joy that Tennyson, like a child, felt in the making of high romance. I illustrate this by three things in the poem. The first of these is Percivale's story of his setting forth upon the Quest. Tennyson's object is to show that pride in one's self, and its extreme opposite — despair of sin, which throws us back on self — alike render the life of exalted holiness impossible, because for that we must, like Galahad, lose self altogether. Percivale starts full of joy in his own bravery, but as he goes, Arthur's warning that his knights in this Quest are following wandering fires occurs to him, and he drops down into despair. Then he sees a series of visions. A burning thirst consumes him ; it is the symbol of the thirst for union with God. " And on I rode," he cries, and I quote this especially for its accurate description of Nature — ' ' And when I thought my thirst Would slay me, saw deep lawns, and then a brook, With one sharp rapid, where the crisping white Played ever hack upon t/ie sloping wave. And took both ear and eye ; and o'er the brook Were apple-trees, and apples by the brook Fallen, and on the lawns." And while he drank the brook and ate the apples, all fell into dust, and he was left alone, thirsting still, and in a land of sand and thorns. It is the symbol of the thirsty soul trying to find in the beauty of Nature its true home, and failing. Then he sees a woman spin- 334 Tennyson ning at the door of a fair home, and she cries " Rest here," but she and the house fall also into dust. It is the symbol of the soul trying to find rest in domestic love, and failing. Then he sees a yellow gleam flash along the world, and the plowman and the milkmaid fall before it ; but One, in golden armour, splendid as the sun and crowned, comes along — and he too, touched, falls into dust. It is the symbol of the soul seeking to be satisfied with the glory of the earth, chiefly to be attained in war. Then he finds a city on a hill, walled, and a great crowd that welcomes him and calls him mightiest and purest ; but when he comes near, the city is a ruined heap, and the crowd is gone. It is the symbol of the soul seeking to slake its thirst by popular applause, and especially in the fame of a ruler of men, but all is thirst and desola- tion as before ; and then he finds the valley of humility and of forgetfulness of his sins in the glory of God's love. It is a rich invention, and perfectly wrought. The next illustration of this brilliant inventiveness is the description of the city of Camelot and of the hall of Arthur, and of the streets of the mediseval town when the knights depart on the Quest. The towers, the roofs, the ornaments of the town, the sculpture in the hall, the great statue of gold with its peaked wings pointing to the northern star, the glass of the twelve windows emblazoned with Arthur's wars, are all described as if the poet had seen them face to face, and with a richness which truly represents the gorgeous architecture and Idylls of the King 335 furniture of the old romances. Tennyson has absorbed and then re-created all he has read in them. I can scarcely praise this work too highly. Lastly, there is the story of Lancelot's half-vision of the Holy Grail and his drift over the sea to the enchanted rock of Carbonek. Its basis is to be found in the old tale ; but whoever reads it in Malory's Morte d' Arthur will see now imaginatively it has been re-conceived. It is full of the true romantic element ; it is close to the essence of the story of the Holy Grail ; there is nothing in all the Idylls more beautiful in vision and in sound ; and the art with which it is worked is as finished as the conception is majestic. I will praise it no more, but quote a part of it. To hear it is its highest praise. Lancelot, torn between his horror of his sin and his love of it, seeking the Grail that he might be free from his sin, yet knowing that he does not wish to be freed, is driven into a madness by the inward battle, " whipt into waste fields far away,'' and beaten down to earth by little folk, mean knights — and then " I came," he cries : ' ' All in my folly to the naked shore, Wide flats, where nothing but coarse grasses grew ; But such a blast, my King, began to blow, So loud a blast along the shore and sea. Ye could not hear the waters for the blast, Tho' heapt in mounds and ridges all the sea Drove like a cataract, and all the sand Swept like a river, and the clouded heavens Were shaken with the motion and the sound." He finds a boat, black in the sea-foam, and drives in it seven days over the deep till it shocks on the castled 336 Tennyson rock of Carbonek whose " charm-like portals open to the sea." Then climbing the steps he passes the lions — " And up into the sounding hall I past ; But nothing in the sounding hall I saw. No bench nor table, painting on the wall Or shield of knight ; only the rounded moon Thro' the tall oriel on the rolling sea. But always in the quiet house I heard Clear as a lark, high o'er me as a lark, A sweet voice singing in the topmost tower To the eastward : up I climb'd a thousand steps With pain : as in a dream I seem'd to climb For ever ; at the last I reach'd a door, A light was in the crannies, and I heard, ' Glory and joy and honour to our Lord And to the Holy Vessel of the Grail.' " Lancelot was not only the greatest knight ; he proves here that he was the greatest singer. The story of Pelleas and Ettarre as told in Malory's book is natural, simple, and common. The ground of the trouble in the tale is also simple. It is the boredom of Ettarre. She is wearied of being loved by Pelleas, for whom she feels no love. " I have no peace from him," she cries. A woman in such circumstances is naturally cruel. These are simple lines on which to move a tale ; and the Pelleas of Malory is quite an ordinary person and his Ettarre not an uncommon character of the Romances. The love-tale also has nothing out of the common, but it is interesting ; it has the romantic air, and it goes up and down between pain and pleasure in an adventurous fashion, of which it is agreeable to read in a quiet hour. Idylls of the King 337 I need not tell Malory's tale, for the things that happen are much the same as in Tennyson's Idyll, at least as far as that place in the tale where Pelleas leaves Ettarre and rides away. At that point, Tennyson re-casts the story. Pelleas, in Malory's book, departs furious with the treachery of Gawain, and equally furious with Ettarre, not for her unchastity, but because she has loved another than himself. Tortured by these two angers, he takes to his bed to die of rage and disappoint- ment. He is then found by a Lady of the Lake whs has pity on him, cures his sickness, replaces his love of Ettarre by love of herself ; and in order to avenge Pel- leas on Ettarre, bewitches Ettarre into a hopeless love of Pelleas. Ettarre, drawn to his bedside, besought for the affection she had rejected. Pelleas cried out, " Begone, traitress ! " and Ettarre died of that sorrow. Then Pelleas went away gaily with the Lady of the Lake. There is no moral direction, nor indeed any special purpose, in the original tale. It is only a faithful record of a piece of human life, quite clearly and simply told. But Tennyson, when he took it, had a special aim in view, and wrote it afresh with a moral purpose. He wanted to represent the luxurious society which precedes the downfall of a nation, especially after the failure of a religious revival founded on the supernatural. The knights have now returned reckless from their unsuccess- ful effort to achieve the Quest of the Grail ; not better but worse than before. Religion, they feel, is useless, and 338 Tennyson an ideal life absurb. They had been sensual, now they have become cynical. Vivien, the lust of the flesh, the enjoyment of the senses alone, is full mistress of the world. Ettarre represents this society ; Pelleas repre- sents its deadly influence on an innocent heart that be- lieves in love, purity, and truth, and their embodiment in the King. He finds a world, in which the King is thought to be a fool, purity ridiculous, love a lust, and the realm of the senses the only realm. Thrown suddenly and unprepared into this society, the full force of disillusion struck on Pelleas like a storm and sank him in the seas. He is the later Gareth of The Idylls. Frank, faithful, loving, innocent, he steps into life ; but where Gareth is victor, he is victim. The conditions of society into which Gareth enters are all on his side. He finds life as beautiful and true as he imagined it to be. The conditions of society into which Pelleas enters are all against him. He finds life the exact contrary of all he imagined it to be. Gareth's history, the history of Pelleas, are equally common stories. When, by long neglect, by long indul- gence, a base society is made, the souls and bodies of far more than half of the innocent children sent into the world are murdered. When society is just and pure, simple and loving beautiful things, the children are destined to a noble happiness. Those who make a world of which the judgment of the pessimist is true, are the worst of criminals. Its children, for the most part disillusioned like Pelleas, are driven into madness Idylls of the King 339 or cynicism. And cynicism, or rather recklessness of everything but of present excitement which is the fore- runner of cynicism, is v/hat Tennyson sketches \a.Pelkas and Ettarre. Ettarre and her flock of girls laugh at the innocence and the love of Pelleas. A grizzled knight, they say, who knew the fashion of the world were a better companion than this baby — "raw, yet so stale." Ettarre promises him her love that he may win the prize for her and give her fame, and when she has got her jewelled circlet, flings his love away, flings a taunt at Guinevere, and leaves Pelleas outside her gates to cool his romance. She is the great lady of a debased society in which everything ideal is only matter of mockery. Such a society lives on the very marge of the incoming tide of weariness. It only continues to live by the fierceness of its strife to gain, hour by hour, enough of light or cruel amusement to keep that tide at bay. When Pelleas will not cease to believe in Ettarre, she is bored to death, and this turns to wrath, and wrath to hate ; and when he endures all, she pushes him out of doors in bonds. When he goes, for a moment she knows her- self. " He is not of my kind. He could not love me did he know me well." But the momentary touch of conscience fails when Gawain comes to see her, bringing merriment and the manners of the court with him, and she is guilty at once with him. This woman is Tenny- son's ethical warning against a loose and luxury-bitten society, and, as ethics, it is well enough expressed. But to bind up these modern warnings with a mediseval 340 Tennyson tale is to render either the tale or the warnings feeble. The naturalism of the story suffers. The allegory eats it up. And the allegory suffers, for the ancient story does not carry it. Moreover the whole Idyll is too plainly a stop-gap, a transition tale inserted to represent the kind of society which intervened between the religious excitement of The Holy Grail and the cynical languor of The Last Tournament. It does not seem to have naturally grown out of Tennyson's original conception. I conjecture this, because there is little in it of the passion of an artist. The shaping of the poem is not fully imaginative, the work of it seems jaded, and even the verse is inferior to that of the other Idylls. When Tennyson attempts to rise into passionate expression, as when Pelleas turns and shrieks his curse at Ettarre and her harlot towers, he becomes only violent without power. Even the natural description suffers from the artist's apparent want of interest in his conception. That vivid sketch, at the beginning, of the wood and of the bracken burn- ing round it in the sunlight, cannot keep up its speed and fire to the end. Either the poet's memory of what he saw played him false, or he did not see the thing with his usual clearness. It is like a studio-picture, not like one painted in the open air. Nor is there a single piece of noble or passionate writing in the whole of it, save at the very end, when Pelleas breaks into the hall of Arthur swordless, and his ruined life upon his face, and will not speak to the Queen when she speaks to him. Idylls of the King 341 But Pelleas lifted up an eye so fierce She quail'd ; and he, hissing " I have no sword," Sprang from the door into the dark. The Queen Look'd hard upon her lover, he on her ; And each foresaw the dolorous day to be ; And all talk died, as in a grove all song Beneath the shadow of some bird of prey ; Then a long silence came upon the hall, And Modred thought, " The time is hard at hand." That is finely done ; there is more of gloom and com- ing woe in it than in all the cursing of Pelleas. But it is alone ; it is the only real good piece of art in this, the poorest of all the Idylls. The Last Tournament is more a work of art than Pel- leas and jEttarre, though it is by no means up to the level, even in form, of many of the other Idylls. It also, like its predecessor, has the air of being an afterthought, of something inserted to point a moral, not to adorn the tale. Since the whole poem is a moral poem, we have no right to object that this portion of it points a moral, but we have a right to ask that it should seem a natural branch of the whole tree. Such a vital connection does exist in the first part ; but the second part, the story of Tristram, is not much more than a graft, and far too plainly a graft. Tristram and his story is scarcely ever alluded to in the rest of the Idylls : he has nothing to do with the Tennysonian movement of the piece, and his story, thus foisted in at the end, is nothing more than an illustration of adultery. The form of the Idyll is 342 Tennyson spoiled, and we are forced to place it on the lower plane, along with Pelleas and Ettarre. The time of the year in the preceding Idyll is full summer, and this represents, in Tennyson's way, the full flowering of the brutal society which he describes. But the season in which the last tournament is held is that of departing autumn — grey skies, wet winds, and all the woods yellowing to their fall. This also is Nature's reflection of the catastrophe in the Idyll. Arthur knows, when the tale is done, the guilt of Guinevere ; and Lancelot and all his kin are finally divided from the King. Meantime we are first shown the further degrada- tion of the society drawn in Pelleas and Ettarre. The story of this social picture is well introduced. The tale is told of Lancelot and Arthur riding through a moun- tain-pass and hearing a child wail : A stump of oak half-dead, From roots like some black coil of carven snakes, Clutch'd at the crag, and started thro' mid-air Bearing an eagle's nest : and thro' the tree Rush'd ever a rainy wind, and thro' the wind Pierced ever a child's cry. And Lancelot climbed for the child, and round its throat lay a ruby carcanet which, when the child died, the Queen bade be tourneyed for. The purest knight, she said, should win for the purest maiden the jewels of this dead innocence. Hence the tournament is called The Tournament of the Dead Innocefice by a court to which innocence is unknown. The prize is won by Tristram, Idylls of the King 343 the free-lover, and given to Isolt who abhors her hus- band. In this fierce contrast Tennyson strikes out on his canvas the mocking cynicism in which he involves the court. There is no innocence which is not dead, and there is no love which is innocent. Secondly, before the jousts are held, we see how the government of the kingdom has broken down. A knight, once of the Table Round, has set up a new Round Table in the north, framed directly counter to Arthur's Table. He slays, burns, robs, and maims the poor, hangs the knights of Arthur, and bids the King beware, for— his hour is come ; The heathen are upon him, his long lance Broken, and his Excalibur a straw. Arthur rides away to chastise this felon, and when he returns all is ruin. But before he goes — and this is finely conceived by Tennyson — he touches those two who have destroyed his work, and leaves an impression of himself upon them ; on Lancelot, that which kindles remorse in him, on Guinevere, that which awakens awe in her. She feels his apartness, his greatness, and his spirituality. In her high bower the Queen , Working a tapestry, lifted up her head, Watch'd her lord pass, and knew not that she sigh'd. Then ran across her memory the strange rhyme Of bygone Merlin, " Where is he who knows ? From the great deep to the great deep he goes." 344 Tennyson It is the theme, the introduction theme, of the Idylls that follow — Guinevere, The Passing of Arthur— sxiA. its dim melody, brought in here, is the thought of a true artist. Then comes the tournament. A day of brooding storm, low thunder, sunless skies, and then of heavy rain, images, in Tennyson's fashion, the exhaustion, the dull coarseness and draggle of the last days of luxury and adultery. Lancelot, all weary, like a late guest over a fading fire, sat umpire of the lists, half careless, half angry with the lawlessness and cowardice of the tourney. All its rules were broken ; and when Tristram entered the lists no one was brave enough to oppose him. The tournament ends in mockery and cursing, and Lancelot cries, " The glory of our Round Table is no more.'' When Tristram comes for the prize, Lancelot asks, " Art thou the purest, brother ? " and Tristram scoffs, " Be happy in your fair Queen, as I in mine." There is no trace of shame left ; the nakedness of life is openly displayed. When Tristram rides round the lists with his prize he is discourteous to all the women. " This day," he cries, " my Queen of Beauty is not here." So, even the glory of courtesy, that last infirmity of chiv- alry, is gone. Then falls thick rain, and in the wet and weariness the women mock : Praise the patient saints, Our one white day of Innocence hath past, Tho' somewhat draggled at the skirt. So be it. Idylls of the King 345 At the revels which follow, the mirth is so loud that the Queen retires indignant, and in her bosom pain is lord. And the first part ends with a talk between Tristram and Dagonet the fool, which insists in other fashion on the ruin a general sensuality has wrought. The second part takes up the ancient story of Tris- tram and Isolt, and the story is used and modified by Tennyson to represent another phase of illicit love and its result on character. The love of Tristram and Isolt in his hands is of a very different type from that of Lancelot and Guinevere. Lancelot and the Queen have loved from the beginning, and through the golden times of the Round Table. The nobleness of the time, and the nobleness it made in them, pervaded their love, and lifted it above itself. It is always faithful, always courteous, always silent, always intense, and often re- pentant. But Tennyson makes Tristram and Isolt love without any nobleness. Their passion has nothing spirit- ual in it, nothing that lifts it into the imaginative realm. The light that leads astray is the fire of sense alone. Tristram is unfaithful, and has become uncourteous. He talks of the freedom of Love to love wherever it may please, and of their love failing when beauty fails, and when desire is cold. He speaks in this light, tossing way in the presence of the woman whom he has loved ; and Isolt, though she shows indignation, suffers it at last with indifference. In the midst of this Mark comes by, and cleaves Tristram through the brain. This sketch, not of our Tristram, but of an invented 346 Tennyson Tristram, of his lightness of character, and his random heart, of his wandering thought, of his soul led by the senses, and his conscience hushed by pleasure — and of the result of these characteristics made into a theory of life and love — is admirably done. What he is, is em- bodied in his song. Free love — free field — we love but while we may : The woods are hush'd, their music is no more ; The leaf is dead, the yearning past away ; New leaf, new life — the days of frost are o'er : New life, new love, to suit the newer day : New loves are sweet as those that went before ; Free love — free field — -we love but while we may. The introduction of this Tristram story no doubt en- hances, in another form, the whole of the ethical lesson to nations and to individuals which is contained in the first part, but I feel from the point of view of art that there are strong objections to the whole of it. First, the old story of Tristram and Isolt is entirely changed and degraded. Tristram is not the Tristram we know, nor Isolt our Isolt ; they are both vulgarised. All the romance is taken out of them ; their great and inevi- table love is turned into a common intrigue. Their mighty sorrow, which has drawn the heart of the world to it, which so many poems have made into a purification of the soul, and to which Wagner gave all his strength, is left un- touched by Tennyson. Nay, their characters, as he draws them, are incapable of such a sorrow. No one has a right to alter out of recognition two characters in one of the great poetic stories of the world, and to blacken them. Idylls of the King 347 Tennyson ought to have had more reverence for a great tale, and more intuition. What he does is all the worse because portions of the ancient story are kept and dwelt on, so that we are forced to think back over the whole tale we know, and to see through this travesty the noble things which have been travestied. To make a great tale in this fashion the stalking-horse of morality, to use it for a passing shot at adultery, to degrade characters which are not degraded, is an iniquity in art. If Tennyson wanted to do this kind of thing for the sake of a moral end, he ought to have left the beautiful romance alone, and to have invented a quite new story for his purpose. Moreover, this piece about Tristram and Isolt was quite unnecessary. The story told of them may, as I said, enhance by a fresh example the ethical aim of the first part ; but it is weaker than the first part, and the lesson is as strong without it. The additional weight given by it is not worth the artistic mistake the poet makes in introducing it. The reader, made angry by the degradation of Tristram and Isolt, becomes angry also with the moralities of the beginning of the Idyll. The first part says all that was necessary to say, and says it well. Thirdly, to shove in at the end, and into a corner, an immense story of human passion, covering as many years and as many events as the story of Lancelot himself, was a complete mistake. Tristram introduced as the victor in the jousts is well enough, and we may even endure his 348 Tennyson soulless talk, though it falsifies his ancient character ; but to attempt to force a story, which is like a great sea, into this narrow pool, is beyond endurance, especially when the first event (that of the love-drink) which, by making the love of these two inevitable, raises the tale into fate- fulness, is deliberately left out. It would have, by excus- ing them, spoilt the ethical use which Tennyson makes of their story. This is too bad of him. Moreover, Tristram and Isolt take us away from the main contention. At the very moment when the whole conception of Tennyson should have been concentrated into white light, in which everything else should be lost, around Arthur and Lancelot and Guinevere, we are carried away to Tintagil, and forced to remember at that distant place the whole of the Tristram story. It would have been far better to have omitted it altogether, and to have told, for the second part of this Idyll, the history of the last meeting of Lancelot and Guinevere, of the treachery of Modred, and of the flight of Guinevere, which at present is told in the Idyll of Guinevere. These belong to this Idyll properly, for when Arthur returns from his expedition to the north, he finds Guinevere gone. Then too, the expedition to the north could be told in its proper place. Tennyson would not have been obliged to drag it in, like a belated recollection, in the middle of Tristram's ride through the forest. These, then, are the unfortunate things into which the ethical direction of a work of art, when it is primary and not secondary, forces an artist. Idylls of the King 349 The description of Arthur's expedition is the one excellent thing in this Idyll. It has the keenest sight of the things described, and it sets Arthur forth, as he ought to be at this time, in heroic proportions. We see him, the unstained, the majestic King, midst of a stained and degraded world, faithful alone among the faithless. We see also the wild northern land near the sea, the black and lonely tower among the marshes ; and they are painted with undiminished vividness and strength. He dream'd ; but Arthur with a hundred spears Rode far, till o'er the illimitable reed, And many a glancing plash and sallowy isle, The wide-wing'd sunset of the misty marsh Glared on a huge machicolated tower That stood with open doors, whereout was roll'd A roar of riot. One of the knights of the Round Table has been hung near the gate on a dead tree, and beside him hangs a horn. And Arthur blew the horn — Then at the dry harsh roar of the great horn, That sent the face of all the marsh aloft An ever upward-rushing storm and cloud Of shriek and plume — a splendid description of the host of water-birds rising startled from the marsh — the felon knight comes forth, and before the mighty presence of the King, not a blow stricken, fell — as the crest of some slow-arching wave, Heard in dead night along that table-shore. Drops flat, and after the great waters break 350 Tennyson Whitening for half a league, and thin themselves, Far over sands marbled with moon and cloud. From less and less to nothing ; thus he fell. This, with the illimitable reed and the wide-winged sunset over glancing plash and shallowy isle, is a mag- nificent description of Nature. Every adjective in it is superbly chosen ; but not less magnificent is the last vision of the flaming tower reddening all the meres and the sea beyond : Which half that autumn night, like the live North, Red-pulsing up thro' Alioth and Alcor, Made all above it, and a hundred meres About it, as the water Moab saw Come round by the east, and outbeyond them flush'd The long low dune and lazy-plunging sea. Lancelot, of all the male characters in the Idylls of the King, is the least troubled by the allegory. He is so un-allegorical that when he is present with the other characters, at those times when they are allegorical, he confuses their symbolism, or materialises them into real personages. He often seems like a man among ghosts. His tale is modernised, but not so flagrantly modernised as that of the rest. We might sometimes mistake him for the Lancelot of Malory. But though not allegorical, he is ethical, and, in this sphere, he is entirely modernised. The moral teaching embodied in him and his relation to Guinevere and Ar- thur, gathers round the question of faithfulness and unfaithfulness in love and marriage. Of the three, Lancelot is again the most actual, if I may use that Idylls of the King 351 word in this manner. But he is actual as a gentleman of our own time, not as the romance knights of the thirteenth century, or of the book of Malory. They had a totally different code of honour in their love- matters from that which rules our social conscience. It is quite allowable in art to re-create the characters of an old tale, provided this re-creation ennobles the men and women as much as the original treatment, or awakens as much sympathy for them. The old story gathers our affections in one fashion round Arthur, Guinevere, and Lancelot. Tennyson does it in another way altogether — in the ethical, not in the romantic way. He was justified in this if his form was good. But he keeps so much of the romantic story that he forces us to mix up his Lancelot with the ancient Lancelot, and the two clash in our minds. Again and again their unfitted- ness each to each, the irreconcilability of their atmos- pheres, disturbs the reader of the Idylls. It is difficult to keep them apart, yet to read the poem with justice to Tennyson we must do this diificult thing. We must ignore the Lancelot of the Romances, when at the same time we are continually reminded of him. Outside of this criticism which has only to do with the form of the tale, Tennyson's conception and drawing of Lancelot are full of power. He is Arthur's earliest and dearest friend. He and Arthur swear undying fealty to one another on the field of battle. On Lan- celot's steadiness in this, since he is the greatest of the knights and has the largest clan, depends half the 352 Tennyson strength and enduringness of the Round Table. He has himself an unbroken admiration for the King, and pays him undiminished honour and affection from the begin- ning to the end. He never wavers in this faithfulness, which is the root of his character. So he is represented in the old story, and so Tennyson represents him. But at one point, not in romantic eyes but in ours, he is unfaithful to Arthur. He loves Guinevere and takes away her love from the King. There is a certain inevi- tableness in this love, for which Tennyson allows, while he condemns the love. And there is an absolute faith- fulness in it on both sides which keeps the characters noble, while the thing itself is represented as not noble. Lancelot, the lover, is as constant to Guinevere, as Lancelot, the friend, is to the King. But it is in this double faithfulness that the pain and the punishment of life inhere — faithful to Arthur, but unfaithful at the dearest point ; faithful to Guinevere, but making her unfaithful at that central point of life in which the fate of her husband, of his work, and of his kingdom is contained. This is a tragic position. It cannot be called tragic in the Romances, for in the chivalric circles of the ro- mantic centuries Lancelot's love of the Queen did not altogether clash, in men's minds, with his fidelity to Arthur. But Tennyson, making the first element in the situation Lancelot's profound constancy (he cannot love the King less, he cannot love the Queen less), wraps Lancelot up in the moral atmosphere which, in our Idylls of the King 353 century as in others, surrounds the marriage tie, and the situation is at once ethically tragic. Lancelot's fidelity to the King jars with his fidelity to Guinevere, and his life is rent to pieces between the two. Both are the deepest things in him, and both are at war in his heart ; and the best piece of character-work in the Idylls is the slow delineation of this intimate and tormented strife. He is true to the King and true to the Queen, but his truth to the King makes him shrink from the Queen, and his truth to the Queen makes him shrink from the King. Tennyson puts this terrible position — terrible to the character he represents Lancelot to be — in the two well-known lines — His honour rooted in dishonour stood, And faith unfaithful kept him falsely true. The battle in his soul comes to a crisis in the Idyll of Lancelot and Elaine. Arthur asks Lancelot if he will come to the jousts for the Diamond. " No," he replies, for he thinks the Queen wishes him to stay with her. " To blame, my Lord Lancelot," the Queen says, when Arthur is gone. " You must go ; our knights and the crowd will murmur if you stay." "Are you so wise, my Queen ? " answers Lancelot, vext that he must seem to have lied to the King, " once it was not so." But he obeys, and on his way to the jousts he meets Elaine, who loves him, and who, being unloved by him, dies of her love. The Queen is jealous, and her suspicion makes Lancelot realise the restlessness and misery of a 23 354 Tennyson life which absolute trust between him and Guinevere can alone make endurable. Moreover, he is wronged by her jealousy, and to be thus wronged in love by one we love, while it deepens love, makes it seem for the time contemptible. He is thought to be untrue when he is conscious he is most true. And he disdains love, life, and all things. Then the King is sorry that his knight iS unable to love — why could he not love this maiden ? And the unsuspiciousness of the King makes Lancelot conscious of friendship failed and of honour lost. He is thought to be true when he knows he is most untrue. This is a double torture, and it is finely wrought out by Tenny- son. It comes to a point of self-knowledge and self- abasement in his soliloquy, when, leaving the Queen wrathful, and Arthur sorrowing and surprised, and the girl who loved and died for him in her grave, he sits thinking by the river, and wishes that his life had never been. The lines in which he analyses his inmost soul are equally plain and subtle, full of that curious truth with which a man, embittered for the moment, views himself ; and as concentrated as if they had been done by Milton's intellectual force. Indeed, some of them are entirely in Milton's manner : For what am I ? What profits it my name Of greatest knight ? I fought for it and have it ; Pleasure to have it, none ; to lose it, pain ; Nov? grown a part of me ; but what use in it ? To make men worse by making my sin known ? Or sin seem less, the sinner seeming great ? Idylls of the King 355 Alas for Arthur's greatest knight, a man Not after Arthur's heart ! I needs must break These bonds that so defame me : not without She wills it : would I, if she wiU'd it ? nay, Who knows ? but if I would not, then may God, I pray him, send a sudden Angel down To seize me by the hair and bear me far, And fling me deep in that forgotten mere, Among the tumbled fragments of the hills ! It is the commonest cry of weakness in the unhappy hours of passion to ask the gods to work a miracle. But what the will does not will to do the gods leave alone. And now, remorse, envenomed by love's vexation, grew in the man ; and when the quest of the Holy Grail arose, Lancelot, thinking he might get rid of his sin, thinking the miracle had come — his love less dear to him for the moment, because the Queen had been un- just to him — said to himself : " If I can but see this Holy Thing, my sin may be plucked out of my heart." But while he strove, his love awoke again, for not from without but from within is passion quelled ; and the strife so deepened that madness came upon him, And whipt him into waste fields far away. Afterwards, when he half saw the Holy Grail, it knew that his wrong love was dearer than his desire to be right, and it smote him down. Yet nobleness lived in him, and might have come to flower had he but willed to surrender his love. But how could he surrender it when the surrender meant misery to Guinevere ? Was he not bound to be faithful to her, even if he perished 356 Tennyson for it eternally ? And in that thought, which was of course half made up by his own desire, the personal wrong to Arthur, the still greater wrong to the kingdom and to society which his love was slowly accomplishing, became like vapours in the sun. He ceased to desire freedom from his guilt. And as in all the heat of his feeble remorse and of his search for the Grail, he had never willed, but only wished for righteousness, the failure of the spiritual excitement left him weaker than before, but less repentant. In Pelleas and Ettarre, the Idyll which succeeds the Holy Grail, he has wholly lost his remorse. He is at peace, and has given himself wholly to his love. These are the lines from Pelleas and Ettarre, in which we see the quiet content of accepted guilt : Not long thereafter from the city gates Issued Sir Lancelot riding airily, Warm with a gracious parting from the Queen, Peace at his heart, and gazing at a star And marvelling what it was. But this peaceful pleasure in wrong, when all effort to overcome it is over, does not endure. Love in unright- eousness loses animation at last, and the pleasure of it passes into languor. In the Idyll of The Last Tourna- ment Lancelot presides in Arthur's seat instead of the King, and all the world seems to him lifeless. He has lost all care, even for the laws of chivalry : Sighing weariedly, as one Who sits and gazes on a faded fire. When all the goodlier guests are past away, Idylls of the King 357 Sat their great umpire, looking o'er the lists. He saw the laws that ruled the tournament Broken, but spake not. Nevertheless, long love, in spite of languor, holds him by a thousand ties to the Queen, till she herself, fearful of discovery, bids him go. But to the very close he is loveloyal, courteous, obedient to the woman whom he loved ; and when he leaves her he repents and dies. His faithfulness even in false love is reckoned to him for righteousness, or rather, when he ceases to violate his conscience, becomes a root of righteousness in him. This is Tennyson's ethical picture of this tragic situa- tion, and it is done with great poetic insight into the human heart. Moreover (though it is charged through- out with a moral lesson) the artistic representation is, on the whole, the foremost thing. I may say the same, though not so strongly, of the representation of Guinevere. It is said that Tennyson intended her, in his allegory, to image forth the Heart (or what we mean by that term) in human nature. She certainly does not represent the infinite variety of the human affections. However, by falling short of the allegorical aim of the poet, she gains as a real person. She is a living woman, not an abstraction. But at the same time she is not an interesting woman. She repre- sents a somewhat common type. Her intelligence is of the slightest, and her character has little variety. We infer that she had charm, but it does not appear in the Idylls of the King, save once when she talks with Gareth 358 Tennyson on the hillside. She is stately and lovely, courteous, eager to please, capable of a great passion, and, in this Idyll, of a great repentance ; but this is nothing ex- traordinary. Such a woman may be found anywhere. There is nothing especially creative in Tennyson's con- ception. She is a Queen, but not a queen in poetry. Young, she threw herself recklessly into her love. In after years she loved on, but with a prudence for which Lancelot half reproaches her. She admires her husband, but the reasons for which she admires him are, she thinks, reasons why she should not love him ; and she is cool and still enough — in an hour when passion is in abeyance — to contrast him in Lancelot's presence with Lancelot ; and to analyse why she came to love Lancelot more than Arthur, as if it were an intellectual inquiry. This, too, is essentially usual, and her passion has little to separate her from the rest of her sex into an individual interest, such as Browning could not have failed to give to her. The central passage of her delin- eation is in Lancelot and Elaine. Tennyson marks it as important, for he quotes a thought from it in the last speech of Guinevere after her parting from the King — that phrase about light and colour. Lancelot asks if Arthur has said aught. She broke into a little scornful laugh : " Arthur, my lord, Arthur, the faultless King, That passionate perfection, my good lord — But who can gaze upon the sun in heaven ? He never spake word of reproach to me, He never had a glimpse of mine untruth, Idylls of the King 359 He cares not for me : only here to-day There gleam'd a vague suspicion in his eyes : Some meddling rogue has tamper'd with him — else Rapt in this fancy of his Table Round, And swearing men to vows impossible, To make them like himself : but, friend, to me He is all fault who hath no fault at all : For who loves me must have a touch of earth ; The low sun makes the colour ; I am yours, Not Arthur's, as ye know, save by the bond." She stands forth then — settled down in the wrong, and thinking herself right. In the same Idyll jealousy comes upon her. In her jealousy she is still the ordi- nary woman. It is true that a woman does not show, while she is jealous, variety of character. Jealousy eats up all other feelings and interests. But if she be a woman of intellect, power, or variety, what she says in her jealousy — since it is said in the very hell of passion — will at least display shreds of these qualities. Guine- vere is without them. That which Tennyson makes her say in the passage beginning It may be I am quicker of belief Than you believe me, Lancelot of the Lake, has not sufficient strength for the situation. It may be that Tennyson desired to run the character on very simple lines, but, if so, the simplicity should have been either forcible or pathetic. It is neither : it is some- what commonplace. It may be, he thought that to keep her the great lady he was bound to subdue her to this moderated tone, under which she is supposed to veil 360 Tennyson her wrath. But the passion does not appear under the phrases — the tongues of flame do not lick upwards through the crust. It is worth while to read the scene between Cleopatra and the messenger who tells her that Anthony is married to Octavia, and contrast it with this passage of Tennyson's. Cleopatra is furious with jeal- ousy ; she is the passion itself, but in the very heat of it, what imagination, what power, what intellect dazzle from her like lightnings ! The myriad variety of the woman emerges through the dominant passion. After this jealousy — being convinced that it was base- less — she, like Lancelot, settles down into the pleasant peacefulness of accepted wrong ; but as this peaceful- ness does not last with Lancelot, so it does not last with Guinevere, and Tennyson tells, and excellently, of the waking of her conscience. When the moral conduct of life, when the great sanctions of morality are to be rep- resented, Tennyson impassionates them and lifts them into poetry. This is one of his greatest powers. He cannot draw the passions themselves or their working with the excellence of the great masters, but he does draw with a level power the moral exaltation which fol- lows on noble passions nobly felt, or the moral depres- sion which follows when they begin to feel themselves ignoble. Henceforth the Powers that tend the soul, To help it from the death that cannot die, And save it even in extremes, began To vex and plague her. Idylls of the King 361 Grim faces and vague spiritual fears beset her as she lies awake at night beside the sleeping King. Or, if she sleep, she dreams An awful dream ; for then she seem'd to stand On some vast plain before a setting sun, And from the sun there swiftly made at her A ghastly something, and its shadow flew Before it, till it touch'd her, and she turn'd — When lo ! her own, that broadening from her feet. And blackening, swallow'd all the land, and in it Far cities burnt, and with a cry she woke. And all this trouble grew, till she could bear no more, and bade Lancelot go. On the eve of their parting all is known. The shame outbreaks, and fills the Court and land. Weeping, they ride away and sever, he to his castle, she to the convent of Almesbury, and all night long as she rode the spirits of the waste and weald moaned round her, and the raven, flying high Croak'd, and she thought, " He spies a field of death" — for what her dream presaged was nigh at hand. All this is told in the beginning of the Idyll of Guin- evere, the story of which properly opens at her coming to Almesbury, where she lives, no one knowing who she is, and is waited on by a young and innocent novice. She is alone with her past love and with her sin, and sometimes the soft memory of the one is with her, and sometimes the grim presence of the other. Her repent- ance is not full as yet. She still regrets. The little novice talks of the wicked Queen, and urges that the 362 Tennyson King's grief is the greatest in all the land. " May I not grieve," Guinevere says, "with the grief of the whole realm?" "Yes," replies the little maid, "all women must grieve that it was a woman who wrought this confusion in the Table Round." " O maiden," answers the Queen, " what dost thou know of the great world ? " And when the maid speaks further of Lancelot himself and his disloyalty, she can bear it no more. Lancelot is first with her still, and she breaks forth in sudden flush of wrathful heat, thinking that the child has been set on to do this by the Abbess. " Spy and traitress," she cries, " get thee hence ! " Then she is sorry for her anger. " 'T is my own guilt," she says, " that betrays itself ; " whereat (in a subtle pas- sage of self-deceiving) she argues whether she repents, and does the very thing the not doing of which she thinks is a proof of repentance— -thinks again of Lancelot : " But help me, heaven, for surely I repent, For what is true repentance but in thought — Not ev'n in inmost thought to think again The sins that made the past so pleasant to us ; And I have sworn never to see him more. To see him more ! " And ev'n in saying this, Her memory from old habit of the mind Went slipping back upon the golden days In which she saw him first. She paints that happy time in a beautiful recalling, her long ride with Lancelot to meet the King, then the meet- ing with Arthur, and how she Idylls of the King 363 sigh'd to find Her journey done, glanced at him, thought him cold, High, self-contain'd, and passionless, not like him, ' ' Not like my Lancelot ! " This is not repentance. It is the cherishing of ancient joy. " She grew half-guilty in her thoughts again." At this very moment of crisis in the inward life the King rides to the convent door. It is well conceived by Tennyson ; and Guinevere, hearing the King's step, falls prostrate on the floor, and a voice speaks to her : Monotonous and hollow like a ghost's Denouncing judgment, but, tho' changed, the King's. We know that speech of Arthur's, spoken by one who was going to his death, and having to the woman's ears the weight and truth of dying words. It tells her of her sin and the destruction she has wrought, and sternly : " The children born of thee are sword and fire. Red ruin, and the breaking up of laws, The craft of kindred, and the godless hosts Of heathen swarming o'er the Northern Sea." But it also tells her that he loves her still, that he will urge her crimes no more, that he forgives as Eternal God forgives. He will not touch her here on earth, but in the world where all are pure she will understand at last, and claim him, not Lancelot, as her true love. Farewell, he says, and he bends to bless her. And this breaks down the woman's long love for another and at last she loves Arthur ! When she loves 364 Tennyson him she repents, but not till then. Guinevere is the ordinary woman. A strong-hearted woman, in whom either conscience or intellect was powerful, would have repented without loving Arthur, or not repented at all ; but this type of woman does not really repent of a sin of this kind till she loses love for one, and finds herself loving another. Guinevere at last loves Arthur, and then she has a horror of herself — but, since she loves afresh, she is upborne on this new delight, and, forgetting the past, looks forward to be Arthur's mate in heaven. That also is characteristic of this ordinary type. Her love saves her, and she passes into good deeds and ministrant power, and in the end, being Abbess as she has been Queen, she died and went— - To where beyond these voices there is peace. Passing from Guinevere to the poem itself, it is neces- sary to repeat that it is entirely modern in form, feeling, and thought. There is not a trace in the Romances of its moralities, of its view of the relations between Arthur and Guinevere and Lancelot, of Arthur's feeling in the matter ; of its strict sense of sin and of repentance, of its careful insistance on the results of Guinevere's wrong on her inner life, of a single one of the motives used by Arthur in his last address to Guinevere.* * It is true that, in Malory's book, Arthur in his fury condemns Guinevere to the stake, and would " shamefully slay " Sir Lancelot; but it is more because their crime was treason than immorality. Arthur is miserable, not because Guinevere has been false, but be- Idylls of the King 365 If we wish then to live in this poem, to feel and understand Tennyson's work, we must put ourselves out of the romantic society and into the social and ethical position that he occupies. To find the power and beauty of any poem, we must breathe for the time the air the poet breathes. Some, however, attack this poem because of this eth- ical direction ; and there are places, certainly, where the ethical aim is made too prominent. But, after all, the cause he has lost Sir Lancelot, the support of his Round Table. He regrets that he was told of the matter. He goes to war with Lance- lot, not so much to wreak his private wrong as to satisfy Sir Gawain whose brothers Lancelot has slain. "Alas," he cries, "that ever this war was begun." He bursts into tears of sorrow, thinking on Lancelot's great courtesy, when Lancelot horses him in a' battle. He falls sick with sorrow. " My lord King Arthur,'' says one of his knights, ' ' would love Sir Lancelot, but Sir Gawain will not suffer him." There is nothing in the original story of Arthur's moral in- dignation in the Idylls. That passage in Tennyson where Arthur says that he holds the man the worst of public foes who lets the wife he knows to be false abide with him and rule his house, is utterly at variance with the sentiment of the original. Arthur is there anxious to have Guinevere back, and does receive her back with honour. Moreover society and the Church in the story differ altogether from Tennyson on this point. When the Pope hears of the war — "he con- sidering the great goodness of King Arthur and Sir Lancelot, the most noble Knight of the world, called to him a noble clerk that at that time was there present, which was the Bishop of Rochester. And the Pope gave him bulls, under seal, charging him, upon pain of interdicting all England, that he take his Queen, dame Guinevere, to him again, and accord with Sir Lancelot " — which Arthur gladly does, receiving Guinevere from the hands of Lancelot ; but is driven by Gawain to banish Lancelot, to his great sorrow. So the Head of the Church and an English bishop — and all society agrees with them — intervene to do that very thing which Tennyson's Arthur declares is deadly to public morality. 366 Tennyson artistic direction is here the dominant direction, and the ethical issues, though clear, are subordinate. It is not just to say that they override this Idyll ; and it seems to me that the real things these objectors dislike is his view of the relation between man and wife. To criticise the poem from the ground of that dislike has no weight as art-criti- cism. Moreover, Tennyson really felt passionately on this matter, and this strong emotion of his lifts the poem out of ethics into art. We feel all the strength and intensity of his nature in it ; personal feeling burns in it. There are places where the poem fails to keep its full power, not from any original want of deep feeling, but from spinning out the emotion into too fine a thread. But on the whole the poem preserves a steady level of moral passion which is almost unique in English poetry. Never- theless, the ethical aim, by its very nature, and in spite of the poet, tries to get the upper hand, and when it suc- ceeds in this, the poem instantly becomes troubled, and its power and beauty lose weight and fineness. It intrudes, for instance, into the most important passage of Guine- vere, and injures the intensity and the effect of the last speech of the King. Tennyson makes Arthur, at a time when personal feeling should be supreme, turn aside to give a lecture on the subject of national purity, and of Guinevere's destruction of his work as a King. The King should have been dropped altogether and the man alone have spoken. I wish, if it be not impertinent to do so, that the whole of that passage beginning so like a sermon. Idylls of the King 367 Bear with me for the last time while I show, and ending with The mockery of my people and their bane, were, with the exception of a few lines, left out ; and I wish also that the other passage, beginning O golden hair, with which I used to play Not knowing, and ending So far, that my doom is, I love thee still, were also expunged. It is too literal ; it may be thought, but not expressed. I do not believe that the imagi- nation would have permitted it, if it had not been half- blinded by the sermon that precedes it. Both passages are outside the situation ; the first is too much in the cold, the second too much in the flesh. As to literary criticism, this Idyll is one of the best in the book. I think its form, as I have already said, would have been better if all the beginning of it, which ex- plains the reason of Guinevere's flight to Almesbury, had made part of the previous Idyll. We should then be wholly at Almesbury with the Queen, and there would be a clearer unity of place for the repose of the imagination. But, putting that aside, this Idyll makes a full unity of impression. We are wholly involved in the fate of Guine- vere from the beginning to the end. Moreover we are carried back by two episodes which concern her, one of 368 Tennyson which is told to her by the maiden, to her earlier and happier days. These do not confuse the impres- sion of her sorrowful fate and presence. They heighten it by contrast. They bring her whole life into the narrow convent room and lay it at the feet of her pain, and our pity for the woman, and the moral impression of her story, are both deepened. These episodes are wrought out with great beauty ; clearly invented, full of colour, life, and movement, imagined in the air of old Romance, and relieving the pity and sorrow of the piece with the charm of youthful love, and with the gaiety of the elfin world. We see through Guinevere's soft, regretful memory her ride with Lancelot from her father's castle in the sinless Maytime, under groves that look'd a paradise Of blossom, over sheets of hyacinth That seem'd the heavens upbreaking thro' the earth — and we think of Tennyson's earlier poem when as yet nothing but the thoughtless delight of their youth and love engaged his mind. The next moment we are borne from this glad beginning to the tragic end, and the Queen hears the step of Arthur on the stair. The same sharp contrast is made by the story the little maid tells of the elfin rapture of the land and all its throng of life, on the news of Guinevere's marriage with Arthur. This is a lovely tale of fairy gaiety, as youthful, as much enchanted in imagination, as if its writer were only five- and-twenty. The novice tells what her father saw. Idylls of the King 369 He said That as he rode, an hour or maybe twain After the sunset, down the coast, he heard Strange music, and he paused, and turning — there All down the lonely coast of Lyonnesse, Each with a beacon-star upon his head, And with a wild sea-light about his feet, He saw them — headland after headland flame Far on into the rich heart of the west ; And in the light the white mermaiden swam. And strong man-breasted things stood from the sea. And sent a deep sea-voice thro' all the land, To which the little elves of chasm and cleft Made answer, sounding like a distant horn. There is so much more, and of equal life and charm and strength ; and then, right over against this delightful flashing of fairyland in a conscience-less joy, is set the gloom and sorrow of the present, and the sympathy of Nature with it. The whole of Britain is covered with a pall of mist, the earth is cold and dark beneath it. The white mist, like a face-cloth to the face Clung to the dead earth, and the land was still. Thus, wj iile this happy story is told within, the vapou^ *cr ^ps on w ithout, the sym bol of the overwhe lming of Arthur's wor k and Ufa, and of the guilt of Gui neygre. As Nature fitt ed herself_tQjt he rapture of t he beginning, 50 she fits herself to the tragic end . Moreover this is done by the poet in preparation for the next Idyll, for the last dim battle in the west which is to be fought in the death-white vapour beside the moaning sea. Arthur is already folded in that mist ; 24 370 Tennyson his wQxk-is-dx Qwned in it : an djie^fades away like a gray shadow, no man knowmg_yv hether he be dead_Qr-alive. Therefore in this Idyll we see the King through Guine- vere's eyes make his departure in the mist — a noble picture, exalting the image of the King as warrior and as lord, and vividly drawn, as if by Rembrandt, in the torches at the convent door. And lo, he sat on horseback at the door ! And near him the sad nuns with each a light Stood, and he gave them charge about the Queen, To guard and foster her for evermore. And while he spake to these his helm was lower'd, To which for crest the golden dragon clung Of Britain ; so she did not see the face, Which then was as an angel's, but she saw, Wet with the mists and stricken by the lights, The Dragon of the great Pendragonship Blaze, making all the night a stream of fire. And even then he turn'd ; and more and more The moony vapour rolling round the King, Who seem'd the phantom of a giant in it, Enwound him fold by fold, and made him gray And grayer, till himself became as mist Before her, njoving ghostlike to hitdoomf* That doom is told in The Passing o/j4rihur,jDVLt-tha,t he is already enwound by its mjsty pall. and_hiinaelf_a_ghgst in it, is nobly conceived, and as splendidly expressed. The Passing of Arthur is set over against The Coming of Arthur, the epilogue over against the prologue. These two are not Idylls in Tennyson's idea. The y are the framework in which the Idylls are contained, the Idylls of the King 371 joining and going of t he great King whose character and life make the existence of all the other characters in the book ; wHose fate, from its beginning to its end, makes the unity and the diversity of the book. In every Idyll, save two,r2VrtTiuymhe master of the action of the piece or the final judge of what has been done ; or if not I master or judge, the dominant figure to accomplish/ whose destiny the doings in the Idyll have occurredJ Even in Merlin and Vivien and in Pelleas and Ettarre, he/ broods like a shadow over the events. We are forced to ask in the first what will happen to him and his work when he is deprived of his great councillor, the only one who knew his inmost soul ; and Tennyson, with great skill, drives us into asking that question. In £ elleas _jind— Ettarre enough is said of him to force us to realise the dreadful fate which overhangs his work. W^— see-4wm- there, like Abdiel among the rebel host, the only one who sjill loves_tE&^§r-eat_V'irfiies_and-_lhe pursuit^ per- fect duty in a world which loves vice as hejoyes virtue, and whrch"^worships the^ material as Jie worships the ideal .life. He scarcely enters into the action of the piece, but he is, nevertheless, vividly present, standing in the background alone, wrapt in his fate as in a cloak. This do minance of one ce ntxaLJLsiixe-towftr-ds— wJioip converges all the_a. ction as weI Las.aILihe-jtersonage££f the poenijjs that which gives it Unity, and supplies it with whatevei^ epic charact&r' it has. The Idylls of the King, as a whole, borders on the epic ; it is not an epic. Its form forbids us to call it by that name, and I 372 Tennyson suppose that Tennyson, feeling that, gave it the name of the Idylls of the King. Nevertheless, the idea of its be- coming an epic was originally in his mind, and influenced his later work upon the whole poem. He hovered, that is, between two forms of his art, and this apparent chang- ing, here and there as he wrote, of the class of poetry in which the work was placed, vaguely troubles the reader. That unity of specialised impression which should at once tell a reader to what kind of poetry the poem belongs, is not here. Again, the proper end of an epic is the moral triumph of the hero over fate, over the attack of time, and over pain. He may be beaten into the dust, all but ruined by life ; but his soul is not subdued. He emerges clear, like Arcturus after a night of storm, purified, almost equal in calm to the immortal Gods. , jZonqu ered wit ji out, he i s conquerqr_witliin^ Even Fate retires, saying : " This man is greater than I." Even the Furies become the Eumenides. In the true epic this is always the position of the hero at the close. It is the position of Adam, it is that of Dante, of ^neas, of Achilles. It is not alto- gether, only partly, the position of Arthur. ge_£asses awa y, it is tr ue into the land JTfij^nndjtended by th" Queens. There isajv ague rum cuu: tjiatji p will retiun ^ b_ut no one knogs. ISg£'"an££v4oubt,jii rnly lit at rare jimesr- by^aith, enshroudhisfate. HisJdiiLgdam,Jl£-thiiika,jvall reel-bacXin to the beast. This Jsnot the true end._^a.or tfae-feeltttgy-nf Ri^^ppirJ]'^-^^ Idylls of the King t^-jt, — have also brg kerL^doyn. That fate might belong to the epic hero, but that which could not, in an epic, belong to him, is the breakingjlown^Lj^rthur^soul. He has no clear faith in mor al victor y, or in the Gods being, beyond our follies and our pain, the masters of rigiiL aiidjovfi Such was the faith of CEdipus at Co- lonus, in that Trilogy which is so near an epic in feeling. Such is the faith of Achilles, of ^neas, of Adam, in the great epics. The epic heroes always issue forth from Hell, a riveder le stelle ; and from their Purgatory, puro e disfosto a salire alle stelle. This faith does not pervade or close the Idylls. The steady belief of In Memoriatn in the certainty of the end being good, and of the value, therefore, of all human effort, is gone from the Idylls of the King. I suppose that the sceptical trouble of the confused and wavering time during which the Idylls were written had now stolen into Tennyson. He did not become, judg- ing from this poem alone, altogether a pessimist. He was too much of a prophet to be altogether that lifeless personage. But he drifted frequently towards that position, and then drifted back again. And the Idylls g/ th&. Kins; represent this wavering_betweeiL-Jiop«— and ^dgspandency, between faith and unfaith in eith er God or rtian. Their writer, if we judge from this poem alone, and from the fate he allots allegorically to Arthur, did not know at this time where he was, nor what he be- lieved, nor what he disbelieved, but, on the whole, flung himself at last on prayer. Even that conclusion belongs to 374 Tennyson the earlier poem. The beginning of The Passing of Arthur places Arthur in a condition which is best ex- pressed by one line in In Memoriam : yAnd vagu el y t-nV''*' ttip laj yi'u lin|in. -^ I give the passage : I found Him in the shining of the stars, I mark'd Him in the flowering of His fields, But in His ways with men I find Him not. I waged His wars, and now I pass and die. O me ! for why is all around us here As if some lesser god had made the world, But had not force to shape it as he would, Till the High God behold it from beyond. And enter it, and make it beautiful ? Or else as if the world were wholly fair. But that these eyes of men are dense and dim. And have not power to see it as it is : Perchance, because we see not to the close ; — For I, being simple, thought to work His will. And have but stricken with the sword in vain ; And all whereon I lean'd in wife and friend Is traitor to my peace, and all my realm Reels back into the beast and is no more. My God, Thou hast forgotten me in my death : Nay — God my Christ — I pass but shall not die. Btmbfe-atM L all its tro uble ! Unable to affi rm or deny anj^ing ! Nq^ clear belief, n o triumph of th e—s&ul ! -^=^tod the last battle is fought in a^dgpt-h-whit^^mist, not £jie_ray_of sunlight to illumine it ! Men know not friend from foe ; old ghosts look in on the fight ; every man who fought in it fought wi^ his heart cold With formless fear ; and ev'n on Arthur fell Confusion, since he saw not whom he fought. Idylls of the King 375 I remember the years in which these lines were written, and the temper of society, and they describe that temper with a great imagination. It was a time when every be- lief was challenged, when society had almost ceased to hope or believe in the future even of man on the earth, and when political and social ideas which prophesied the advent of a more unselfish world were laughed at as unpractical. Moreover those ideas were then only to be found in a vague form among the working classes, of whose life and hopes and struggle Tennyson knew noth- ing. Few then kept their faith, whether in God and Man, or in Man alone ; few were bold enough to believe that the confusion was not the prelude to decay but the turmoil that precedes a new birth, and Tennyson was not one of these. He was in one part of his nature, and judging from his poetry alone, too much the product of the Universities, too much in the society which is called cultured, too apart from the surgings of the people, too much in harbour — to be able in the midst of the con- fusion to see the great order, in the midst of the battle to be sure of the victory. At other times, and in another part of his nature, whenever he yielded himself wholly to the pure Muse within him, and did not bring his impulse to the tribunal of the understanding for criticism, he escapes into that land of faith where the sun shines on the glory which shall be, and, doubting no more, proph- esies clear good ; but this, which is true of the time when he wrote In Memoriam, and also of his old age when the epic of his life closed in a hero's victory, is not true of 376 Tennyson the period when he wrote the beginning of The Passing of Arthur, nor indeed, as I think, of the whole of the period of the composition of the Idylls of the King. These were the days of his dim battle in the mist. And perhaps this trouble was all the worse for him, because the audacities, the reckless hopes, the faiths which be- lieve without seeing, the keen contempt for any society which says " All is wrong or going wrong," or, " I can- not tell whether all is wrong or right," were not his dowry as a poet. Even when Arthur is carried away over the mere to Avalon, and when he cries back to Bedivere — in the part of the poem which was published in 1842 — that prayer has power with God, he says : For all my mind is clouded with a doubt. I do not press that line, however, into my statement, for it may be merely a suggestion of the vagueness of Arthur's fate, of which we are left ignorant in the Romances ; but it, with all the rest, fits in to prove the point with which I began and to which I now return, that Arthur is not an epic hero, and that this poem can- not be called an epic. Tennyson did not call it so, but others have. The epic hero must have a clear moral victory and be purified into clearness, and this is not the case with Arthur. I turn now to Arthur himself as conceived by Tenny- son. First, it must be understood that Tennyson's Arthur has even less to do with the Arthur of the Ro- mances than his Lancelot has with the romantic Lan- Idylls of the King 377 celot. The moral or even the social atmosphere of the Arthur of chivalry is not the atmosphere which Ten- nyson's Arthur breathes. Again I recur to the primal fault of form, which belongs to the whole poem. The Arthur in Tennyson's mind, and the Arthur of the romantic era, are linked together by an unnatural tie, and the two often quarrel. Most of the objections made against Arthur have their real root in this. They are objections rather against the form than against the poem. But, on the whole, Arthur as the modern gentle- man, as the modern ruler of men, such a ruler as one of our Indian heroes on the frontier, is the main thing in Tennyson's mind, and his conception of such a man contains his ethical lesson to his countrymen. As to Arthur the King, he is a man who has the power of sending his own soul into the soul of his fol- lowers, and making them his own — images of himself — and this is the power of a born ruler of men. It is the one-man power, that power of which Carlyle as well as Tennyson made too much — because the secret of the progress of mankind, a secret the true ruler should understand, does not lie in one great individu- ality devouring all other individualities and making them into his pattern, but in his so sacrificing his nat- ural mastery as to develop into vividness the individual forces of all the characters he governs. Carlyle never saw that truth, nor Ruskin, nor Tennyson. But Tenny- son, though he often preached this one-man theory, does not hold it fast. It seems to have crept into his mind — 3/8 Tennyson wavering hither and thither on many subjects during the years in which he wrote the Idylls — that this theory did not hold water in practice. For, though Arthur imposes his character at first on all his knights, they all glide away from him. Their separate individualities assert themselves, and assert themselves in reaction from the foreign, overmastering, and exalted personality of Arthur. Tri fact, Tennyson repre sents in the Idylls , whether consciously ornot, the complete breaking dow n irTprartire jfvffhp^fhe nry c,^^\y^ \ie^Y^-yiprr\rv\ex^:!>iha^ makes every ojie into his o wn pattern. I do not think he meant to give us thii^ good democratic lesson, but he ,s given it. Another part of the conception of Arthur as ruler, is that with which all the ethical writers, whether of his- tory or fiction, have, during the last fifty years, made us familiar ; and which many Englishmen, sent to our far dependencies, have illustrated by their lives. Wrthijr is the clea rer of the, .waste places, of the earth, thefTriver forthj3f^Jhe_cruel beas t an d_th£-lawless-m an, he who jef s in the light and air, the doer of stern justice, the de- liverer of the oppressed, the_orgarns.er_orTaw^MidjC)rder, the welder tpgethjerxjf alHhe forc es of the kingd om-into a compact body for right and against wrong, the builder ^f great cities and j joTjle—afehtteetare;— the teacher of agriculture, the m aker of roads and water -ways, the CultureHero,_as the Folklorist^_would__call him ; and, finally, the gre at warrior who, though he does not excel the rest of his men in courage, excels them all as leader Idylls of the King 379 of the battle. On all this there is nothing particular tjQssff: — TTis the general, the well-known conception. The rest of the conception of Arthur as King is as the moral lawgiver,, and chiefly as the demander^of chasit^;__ Jt is on the breaking of the law of purity that he most insists to Guinevere as the cause of the ruin of his aims and of his Order. His knights may love — nay, nothing so well makes a man as the maiden passion for a maid. His knights may marry : life finds its j:rown in a true_marriag£..^ But only one maiden is to be loved, and _w edded man and woman rnust l ive only for e acli^ other. And we have seen that this is Tennyson's opinion. All his poetry is full of it. Yet, he makes the whole effort utterly break down, and I do not comprehend his position. I sometimes think that the hopelessness of the years in which he wrote the Idylls seized upon him, and he ceased for a time to believe in the victory of good. For it is not pn1y the p artijl_f ailure of purity of life w hich he re pre- sents in the Idylls ; it is its c omp let ^^gverthrow . Every ^ one, wit h the exception of Arthu r, Perrivale^ his sister^ _ pivl^^jf j"''^, hprnmpq u,Tteba5 t-e. I sometimes think thaTTIemilied to illustrate the truth that vows imposed from without were not only useless when the character remained unchanged, but that they drove men and women into their opposites ; and perhaps that his hatred of monkery influenced him further in this di- rection ; but the astonishing result to which he comes is more than these motives should produce. Not a 380 Tennyson soul kee ps the vow s, except Arthur and those w ho have left the w orld for the _cloister^ I do not understand why he works out a result which seems not, only to contra - dict the possibility of his rule of chastity being observed, but which makes that rule issue in a wholly shame sogie^ It is as if he despaired of purity. The thing he most insists on is made by him to be the impossible thing. This is an excessively curious conclusion for Tennyson to come to. jSypry_mi£-i" *^^'' Idylls, sa ve_the_ few I have mention ed,- thinks this vow tccumjifih ^fen:- mortal man Merlin says that no one can keegjt. ViviVii anri Mark , of course , laugh it to scorn. Gui nevere declares it to be impossi- ble, and Lancelot knows it. Gawain openly a 3opts unchastity. Pellea s saysj that the King has made hi^ knights foQls__ajid_Liars ; Tr-istraj3i^_diat_Jie_biinael£-had sworn but by the sheU^that the strict vow snaps itself, that flesh and blood were sure to violate it. Bind me to one ? The wide world laughs a t it. Why does Tennyson, we wonder, make almost all his characters think chastity impossible ? Then, he even goes further. Theconditionof_society in the court and country set forth in Pelleas and Ettarre -artd-ia — ^^ke-jMsT '1 'ournament is incr£dibdy_bad;_T>rery' waman—Ls-im^haste and every maiL __-Ettarre is as im- moral as Tristram, and both far more so than they are in the original tales. Rome in its decadence, France under the Regent, were not so wholly evil as Arthur's Idylls of the King 381 court, with the sole exception of Arthur. The poet^ pjovesjoojuuch. Arthur's effo rt is too ghastly afailure. And the representation of this result — unless we fall back on the needs of the allegory for an explanation — is not in the interests of morality. J^ervnyson Hnes nnt^ jteally ^in this working out of his moral a im — strengthen the will to be chaste , but we^^gns it. The sh}^ ijh iP g t hgj appears is that chasti tyj2.322JlI2I^^siJjiJj^^ Tenny- son cannot, of course, have meant this ; but his art ought to have saved him from the possibility of its infer- ence. Had he been less ethical and less allegorical, he would not have fallen into this artistic error. There are better things to say when we think of Tennyson's conception of Arthur as a man — as the " very perfect knight." We have a part of the charac- ter he meant to represent in the dedication to the /dy/Zs of the King, where he compares his Arthur to Prince Albert, And indeed he seems to me Scarce other than my King's ideal knight, " Who reverenced his conscience as his king ; Whose glory was, redressing human wrong ; Who spake no slander, no, nor listen'd to it ; Who loved one only and who clave to her — " But Arthur is more than that. He is not on ly faith- ful-tgJiis wife, he is-a*-faitMuldrLjliendsliip^as-irLlove. -^Affection of Finyjan d once giv en is always^given. His chastityjs as perfe ct as Galahad' s, within the bounds of marriage. His^ hon our i s unstained, and no passion of whatever-^ f orce has-poweiL to_ make him waver from its 382 Tennyson call.. His word, once passed, is passed for ever. He is so true that he cannot believe in untruthfulness, so faith- ful that he is unsuspicious of unfaithfulness. What is right and just to do hed oes. though all t he world fall to ruin roundjiiinr His moral courage is as great as his physical courage. He can rise into a white heat of wrath or love ; but he is not led away by false or fleet- ing heats of feeling into folly or intemperance. Add to this absolute courtesy, gentleness, pity, forgiveness for the fallen, unselfish joy in the fame and glory of others, and we see the perfect knight of Tennyson. It is confessedly an ideal, but an ideal to which the poet desired us to aspire, and to gain which he thought pos- sible. This ideal has been the object of many critical attacks, or, to put it more justly, Arthur has been depre- ciated as a man with various mockeries. I need not particularise them. They have been about us for a long time in reviews, in society, among men and women who call themselves emancipated, and the question is : " Is there any truth at the bottom of this irritation against the character of Arthur ? " If the irritation be directed against those parts of his character on which I have now dwelt, against this ideal of a knight, then it is not only a false irritation, but it also speaks ill for the society which is afflicted by it. Tennyson has drawn in Arthur that which every man ought to wish to be. The qualities of Arthur would, when vital in our lives, make our society noble and lov- ing, magnanimous and magnificent. The whole world Idylls of the King 38J ought to be better for this picture of a man, and the future will be grateful to Tennyson for it. On this side of the matter these critics are not to be trusted. But is there no side on which Arthur fails, on which he makes a not quite human impression, a part of the pict- ure in decrying which the critics have some reason ? Yes, there is — but they have no cause to boast themselves of their acumen. What they say is not original. Ten- nyson himself has said it by the mouth of Guinevere, and it appears in the sayings of even the Knights of Arthur — of Gawain and Tristram, much more in the sayings of Vivien and of Mark. There is scarcely a single attack made by the critics on Arthur which has not been made by Tennyson himself. In fact, Arthur is a little superhuman, a little too out of the world, a little too easily deceived, a little too good for human nature's daily food. Tennyson made him so, and deliberately. " Why ? " we ask ; " there was no need. He would have had even more force as an ideal character, even more influence on us, if he had shared more in our humanity. Why did Tennyson superhumanise him ? " The real reason lay in the necessities of that allegory which Tennyson chose to infiltrate into his poem. He represents Arthur as a man, and when he does so, even when he makes him ideal in conduct and aim, the char- acter is just and clear and human. But he is forced by his allegory to paint him also as the rational soul, as an abstract idea, and whenever he does this Arthur steps outside of humanity, and that is naturally resented. At 384 Tennyson all the points where Arthur represents the soul alone, Guinevere and the critics are right. He does want colour and warmth, he is too much outside of the world ; he is under-passioned, if I may coin a word ; and the demands of his perfection do not sufficiently consider the weakness of human nature. He loses life, and be- comes, in his allegorical form, the image only of a man. But because Tennyson was unfortunate enough as an artist to trouble his poem by making his chief character not only a man but an allegorical symbol, we have no right to transfer our impatience with the characteristics of the unhuman symbol to the ideal character of the man. Let us keep them separate. Nevertheless the artist ought not to have given us this trouble — ought not to have mixed up the man with the general notion of the soul of man. Arthur ought either to have been one thing or the other — either the rational Soul alone, or the man alone ; not sometimes one and sometimes the other. And in this Passing of Arthur he is so much the man and so little of the Soul that he pleases more than else- where in the book. Even in the great speech y;o Guine- vere in the last Idyll, the portions of it which are spoken by the King as the Soul in man contending with sense, lessen the humanity of those parts of it which are spoken from the man to the woman. .Butjiere in this J^assing^/^^j4rlh(rheis^togetl^^ jnsin, and He is 3ear to us throughout^ He feels his fail- -ure in^he great work he desired to do witKjthe^iame'seir- pitifulness that many a high reformer has felt in the hour Idylls of the King 385 of his death. I have already quoted the Hnes. They are full of humanity. They are not the voice of an abstract soul. And their wild cry at the end : My God, Thou hast forgotten me in my death ! is changed suddenly, as many a prophet's has been changed, into a cry of trust concerning his personal fate. Nay — God, my Christ — I pass but shall not die. Then, like many another leader of men, he dreams on the day before he dies — and the ghost of Gawain, blown Along a wandering wind, and past his ear Went shrilling, " Hollow, hollow, all delight ! Hail, King ! to-morrow thou shalt pass away. Farewell ! there is an isle of rest for thee." And the shrill voice fades away, likened in a noble simile to wild birds that change Their season in the night and wail their way From cloud to cloud ; and is imaginatively mingled with dim cries as of a city sacked at night, and Arthur wakes and thinks, like a poet, that all the Faery things that haunt the waste and wild mourn : for, when he goes, they too will go. This also is ^^i^ntq^^Jffi^xore, and when, mournfully saying that Jo figb.t-against4»i»f €epl^-i&-to-fight against. himself, and that their death i s j^deajlkgtrakeJQJiim, he feel s the lo ve of his youth recur and its late misery darken the whole world, so that the mist in which he 25 386 Tennyson moves is made less by Nature than by his own sorrow for Guinevere : This blind haze which ever since I saw One lying in the dust at Almesbury, Hath folded in the passes of the world, he is still more one with whom we can feel as man to man. Then copies th a t no ble— pas aage of the figk LuaL. the_dead mist upon the ocean-shore, j3n the sunset botmd-of-_L yonness^ — in which the allegory recurs^'but ^-Z splendidly recurs, in veiled words which^ descrike^lhe WJyIr battlp "r_g espera,te Tnaagaxiy lor-Jj fe_an d_ f ajth aad_hopejn the rmaSr of its chiUmystejy^till withrth e falling ittght the North wind roseand_the_tide_;_ the mist dissolved, and Arthur saw none alive around him but Bedivere and the traitor Modred. A great voice then shakes the world — a noble imagination of Tennyson — and seems to waste the realm, and to beat confusion into Arthur's heart : I know not what I am, Nor whence I am, nor whether I be King. Behold, I seem but King among the dead. This, too, may be allegory, but the human element in it is stronger than the allegorical, and it goes home to the heart of the situation. Afterwards, in one last act of kinghood, when he slays the traitorous cause of all the woe, he passes for a moment out of his confusion into the full sense of his kinghood, of whom he is, and Idylls of the King 387 whence he has come, and whither he is going. This is the fate of a man and the heart of a man, and after all our ethics and allegory, it is sweet and true to company with it. And then we enter into the old and beloved piece of poetry which we know so well — into the